Voyage_au_centre_de_la_terre_anglais.txt 438 KB

123456789101112131415161718192021222324252627282930313233343536373839404142434445464748495051525354555657585960616263646566676869707172737475767778798081828384858687888990919293949596979899100101102103104105106107108109110111112113114115116117118119120121122123124125126127128129130131132133134135136137138139140141142143144145146147148149150151152153154155156157158159160161162163164165166167168169170171172173174175176177178179180181182183184185186187188189190191192193194195196197198199200201202203204205206207208209210211212213214215216217218219220221222223224225226227228229230231232233234235236237238239240241242243244245246247248249250251252253254255256257258259260261262263264265266267268269270271272273274275276277278279280281282283284285286287288289290291292293294295296297298299300301302303304305306307308309310311312313314315316317318319320321322323324325326327328329330331332333334335336337338339340341342343344345346347348349350351352353354355356357358359360361362363364365366367368369370371372373374375376377378379380381382383384385386387388389390391392393394395396397398399400401402403404405406407408409410411412413414415416417418419420421422423424425426427428429430431432433434435436437438439440441442443444445446447448449450451452453454455456457458459460461462463464465466467468469470471472473474475476477478479480481482483484485486487488489490491492493494495496497498499500501502503504505506507508509510511512513514515516517518519520521522523524525526527528529530531532533534535536537538539540541542543544545546547548549550551552553554555556557558559560561562563564565566567568569570571572573574575576577578579580581582583584585586587588589590591592593594595596597598599600601602603604605606607608609610611612613614615616617618619620621622623624625626627628629630631632633634635636637638639640641642643644645646647648649650651652653654655656657658659660661662663664665666667668669670671672673674675676677678679680681682683684685686687688689690691692693694695696697698699700701702703704705706707708709710711712713714715716717718719720721722723724725726727728729730731732733734735736737738739740741742743744745746747748749750751752753754755756757758759760761762763764765766767768769770771772773774775776777778779780781782783784785786787788789790791792793794795796797798799800801802803804805806807808809810811812813814815816817818819820821822823824825826827828829830831832833834835836837838839840841842843844845846847848849850851852853854855856857858859860861862863864865866867868869870871872873874875876877878879880881882883884885886887888889890891892893894895896897898899900901902903904905906907908909910911912913914915916917918919920921922923924925926927928929930931932933934935936937938939940941942943944945946947948949950951952953954955956957958959960961962963964965966967968969970971972973974975976977978979980981982983984985986987988989990991992993994995996997998999100010011002100310041005100610071008100910101011101210131014101510161017101810191020102110221023102410251026102710281029103010311032103310341035103610371038103910401041104210431044104510461047104810491050105110521053105410551056105710581059106010611062106310641065106610671068106910701071107210731074107510761077107810791080108110821083108410851086108710881089109010911092109310941095109610971098109911001101110211031104110511061107110811091110111111121113111411151116111711181119112011211122112311241125112611271128112911301131113211331134113511361137113811391140114111421143114411451146114711481149115011511152115311541155115611571158115911601161116211631164116511661167116811691170117111721173117411751176117711781179118011811182118311841185118611871188118911901191119211931194119511961197119811991200120112021203120412051206120712081209121012111212121312141215121612171218121912201221122212231224122512261227122812291230123112321233123412351236123712381239124012411242124312441245124612471248124912501251125212531254125512561257125812591260126112621263126412651266126712681269127012711272127312741275127612771278127912801281128212831284128512861287128812891290129112921293129412951296129712981299130013011302130313041305130613071308130913101311131213131314131513161317131813191320132113221323132413251326132713281329133013311332133313341335133613371338133913401341134213431344134513461347134813491350135113521353135413551356135713581359136013611362136313641365136613671368136913701371137213731374137513761377137813791380138113821383138413851386138713881389139013911392139313941395139613971398139914001401140214031404140514061407140814091410141114121413141414151416141714181419142014211422142314241425142614271428142914301431143214331434143514361437143814391440144114421443144414451446144714481449145014511452145314541455145614571458145914601461146214631464146514661467146814691470147114721473147414751476147714781479148014811482148314841485148614871488148914901491149214931494149514961497149814991500150115021503150415051506150715081509151015111512151315141515151615171518151915201521152215231524152515261527152815291530153115321533153415351536153715381539154015411542154315441545154615471548154915501551155215531554155515561557155815591560156115621563156415651566156715681569157015711572157315741575157615771578157915801581158215831584158515861587158815891590159115921593159415951596159715981599160016011602160316041605160616071608160916101611161216131614161516161617161816191620162116221623162416251626162716281629163016311632163316341635163616371638163916401641164216431644164516461647164816491650165116521653165416551656165716581659166016611662166316641665166616671668166916701671167216731674167516761677167816791680168116821683168416851686168716881689169016911692169316941695169616971698169917001701170217031704170517061707170817091710171117121713171417151716171717181719172017211722172317241725172617271728172917301731173217331734173517361737173817391740174117421743174417451746174717481749175017511752175317541755175617571758175917601761176217631764176517661767176817691770177117721773177417751776177717781779178017811782178317841785178617871788178917901791179217931794179517961797179817991800180118021803180418051806180718081809181018111812181318141815181618171818181918201821182218231824182518261827182818291830183118321833183418351836183718381839184018411842184318441845184618471848184918501851185218531854185518561857185818591860186118621863186418651866186718681869187018711872187318741875187618771878187918801881188218831884188518861887188818891890189118921893189418951896189718981899190019011902190319041905190619071908190919101911191219131914191519161917191819191920192119221923192419251926192719281929193019311932193319341935193619371938193919401941194219431944194519461947194819491950195119521953195419551956195719581959196019611962196319641965196619671968196919701971197219731974197519761977197819791980198119821983198419851986198719881989199019911992199319941995199619971998199920002001200220032004200520062007200820092010201120122013201420152016201720182019202020212022202320242025202620272028202920302031203220332034203520362037203820392040204120422043204420452046204720482049205020512052205320542055205620572058205920602061206220632064206520662067206820692070207120722073207420752076207720782079208020812082208320842085208620872088208920902091209220932094209520962097209820992100210121022103210421052106210721082109211021112112211321142115211621172118211921202121212221232124212521262127212821292130213121322133213421352136213721382139214021412142214321442145214621472148214921502151215221532154215521562157215821592160216121622163216421652166216721682169217021712172217321742175217621772178217921802181218221832184218521862187218821892190219121922193219421952196219721982199220022012202220322042205220622072208220922102211221222132214221522162217221822192220222122222223222422252226222722282229223022312232223322342235223622372238223922402241224222432244224522462247224822492250225122522253225422552256225722582259226022612262226322642265226622672268226922702271227222732274227522762277227822792280228122822283228422852286228722882289229022912292229322942295229622972298229923002301230223032304230523062307230823092310231123122313231423152316231723182319232023212322232323242325232623272328232923302331233223332334233523362337233823392340234123422343234423452346234723482349235023512352235323542355235623572358235923602361236223632364236523662367236823692370237123722373237423752376237723782379238023812382238323842385238623872388238923902391239223932394239523962397239823992400240124022403240424052406240724082409241024112412241324142415241624172418241924202421242224232424242524262427242824292430243124322433243424352436243724382439244024412442244324442445244624472448244924502451245224532454245524562457245824592460246124622463246424652466246724682469247024712472247324742475247624772478247924802481248224832484248524862487248824892490249124922493249424952496249724982499250025012502250325042505250625072508250925102511251225132514251525162517251825192520252125222523252425252526252725282529253025312532253325342535253625372538253925402541254225432544254525462547254825492550255125522553255425552556255725582559256025612562256325642565256625672568256925702571257225732574257525762577257825792580258125822583258425852586258725882589259025912592259325942595259625972598259926002601260226032604260526062607260826092610261126122613261426152616261726182619262026212622262326242625262626272628262926302631263226332634263526362637263826392640264126422643264426452646264726482649265026512652265326542655265626572658265926602661266226632664266526662667266826692670267126722673267426752676267726782679268026812682268326842685268626872688268926902691269226932694269526962697269826992700270127022703270427052706270727082709271027112712271327142715271627172718271927202721272227232724272527262727272827292730273127322733273427352736273727382739274027412742274327442745274627472748274927502751275227532754275527562757275827592760276127622763276427652766276727682769277027712772277327742775277627772778277927802781278227832784278527862787278827892790279127922793279427952796279727982799280028012802280328042805280628072808280928102811281228132814281528162817281828192820282128222823282428252826282728282829283028312832283328342835283628372838283928402841284228432844284528462847284828492850285128522853285428552856285728582859286028612862286328642865286628672868286928702871287228732874287528762877287828792880288128822883288428852886288728882889289028912892289328942895289628972898289929002901290229032904290529062907290829092910291129122913291429152916291729182919292029212922292329242925292629272928292929302931293229332934293529362937293829392940294129422943294429452946294729482949295029512952295329542955295629572958295929602961296229632964296529662967296829692970297129722973297429752976297729782979298029812982298329842985298629872988298929902991299229932994299529962997299829993000300130023003300430053006300730083009301030113012301330143015301630173018301930203021302230233024302530263027302830293030303130323033303430353036303730383039304030413042304330443045304630473048304930503051305230533054305530563057305830593060306130623063306430653066306730683069307030713072307330743075307630773078307930803081308230833084308530863087308830893090309130923093309430953096309730983099310031013102310331043105310631073108310931103111311231133114311531163117311831193120312131223123312431253126312731283129313031313132313331343135313631373138313931403141314231433144314531463147314831493150315131523153315431553156315731583159316031613162316331643165316631673168316931703171317231733174317531763177317831793180318131823183318431853186318731883189319031913192319331943195319631973198319932003201320232033204320532063207320832093210321132123213321432153216321732183219322032213222322332243225322632273228322932303231323232333234323532363237323832393240324132423243324432453246324732483249325032513252325332543255325632573258325932603261326232633264326532663267326832693270327132723273327432753276327732783279328032813282328332843285328632873288328932903291329232933294329532963297329832993300330133023303330433053306330733083309331033113312331333143315331633173318331933203321332233233324332533263327332833293330333133323333333433353336333733383339334033413342334333443345334633473348334933503351335233533354335533563357335833593360336133623363336433653366336733683369337033713372337333743375337633773378337933803381338233833384338533863387338833893390339133923393339433953396339733983399340034013402340334043405340634073408340934103411341234133414341534163417341834193420342134223423342434253426342734283429343034313432343334343435343634373438343934403441344234433444344534463447344834493450345134523453345434553456345734583459346034613462346334643465346634673468346934703471347234733474347534763477347834793480348134823483348434853486348734883489349034913492349334943495349634973498349935003501350235033504350535063507350835093510351135123513351435153516351735183519352035213522352335243525352635273528352935303531353235333534353535363537353835393540354135423543354435453546354735483549355035513552355335543555355635573558355935603561356235633564356535663567356835693570357135723573357435753576357735783579358035813582358335843585358635873588358935903591359235933594359535963597359835993600360136023603360436053606360736083609361036113612361336143615361636173618361936203621362236233624362536263627362836293630363136323633363436353636363736383639364036413642364336443645364636473648364936503651365236533654365536563657365836593660366136623663366436653666366736683669367036713672367336743675367636773678367936803681368236833684368536863687368836893690369136923693369436953696369736983699370037013702370337043705370637073708370937103711371237133714371537163717371837193720372137223723372437253726372737283729373037313732373337343735373637373738373937403741374237433744374537463747374837493750375137523753375437553756375737583759376037613762376337643765376637673768376937703771377237733774377537763777377837793780378137823783378437853786378737883789379037913792379337943795379637973798379938003801380238033804380538063807380838093810381138123813381438153816381738183819382038213822382338243825382638273828382938303831383238333834383538363837383838393840384138423843384438453846384738483849385038513852385338543855385638573858385938603861386238633864386538663867386838693870387138723873387438753876387738783879388038813882388338843885388638873888388938903891389238933894389538963897389838993900390139023903390439053906390739083909391039113912391339143915391639173918391939203921392239233924392539263927392839293930393139323933393439353936393739383939394039413942394339443945394639473948394939503951395239533954395539563957395839593960396139623963396439653966396739683969397039713972397339743975397639773978397939803981398239833984398539863987398839893990399139923993399439953996399739983999400040014002400340044005400640074008400940104011401240134014401540164017401840194020402140224023402440254026402740284029403040314032403340344035403640374038403940404041404240434044404540464047404840494050405140524053405440554056405740584059406040614062406340644065406640674068406940704071407240734074407540764077407840794080408140824083408440854086408740884089409040914092409340944095409640974098409941004101410241034104410541064107410841094110411141124113411441154116411741184119412041214122412341244125412641274128412941304131413241334134413541364137413841394140414141424143414441454146414741484149415041514152415341544155415641574158415941604161416241634164416541664167416841694170417141724173417441754176417741784179418041814182418341844185418641874188418941904191419241934194419541964197419841994200420142024203420442054206420742084209421042114212421342144215421642174218421942204221422242234224422542264227422842294230423142324233423442354236423742384239424042414242424342444245424642474248424942504251425242534254425542564257425842594260426142624263426442654266426742684269427042714272427342744275427642774278427942804281428242834284428542864287428842894290429142924293429442954296429742984299430043014302430343044305430643074308430943104311431243134314431543164317431843194320432143224323432443254326432743284329433043314332433343344335433643374338433943404341434243434344434543464347434843494350435143524353435443554356435743584359436043614362436343644365436643674368436943704371437243734374437543764377437843794380438143824383438443854386438743884389439043914392439343944395439643974398439944004401440244034404440544064407440844094410441144124413441444154416441744184419442044214422442344244425442644274428442944304431443244334434443544364437443844394440444144424443444444454446444744484449445044514452445344544455445644574458445944604461446244634464446544664467446844694470447144724473447444754476447744784479448044814482448344844485448644874488448944904491449244934494449544964497449844994500450145024503450445054506450745084509451045114512451345144515451645174518451945204521452245234524452545264527452845294530453145324533453445354536453745384539454045414542454345444545454645474548454945504551455245534554455545564557455845594560456145624563456445654566456745684569457045714572457345744575457645774578457945804581458245834584458545864587458845894590459145924593459445954596459745984599460046014602460346044605460646074608460946104611461246134614461546164617461846194620462146224623462446254626462746284629463046314632463346344635463646374638463946404641464246434644464546464647464846494650465146524653465446554656465746584659466046614662466346644665466646674668466946704671467246734674467546764677467846794680468146824683468446854686468746884689469046914692469346944695469646974698469947004701470247034704470547064707470847094710471147124713471447154716471747184719472047214722472347244725472647274728472947304731473247334734473547364737473847394740474147424743474447454746474747484749475047514752475347544755475647574758475947604761476247634764476547664767476847694770477147724773477447754776477747784779478047814782478347844785478647874788478947904791479247934794479547964797479847994800480148024803480448054806480748084809481048114812481348144815481648174818481948204821482248234824482548264827482848294830483148324833483448354836483748384839484048414842484348444845484648474848484948504851485248534854485548564857485848594860486148624863486448654866486748684869487048714872487348744875487648774878487948804881488248834884488548864887488848894890489148924893489448954896489748984899490049014902490349044905490649074908490949104911491249134914491549164917491849194920492149224923492449254926492749284929493049314932493349344935493649374938493949404941494249434944494549464947494849494950495149524953495449554956495749584959496049614962496349644965496649674968496949704971497249734974497549764977497849794980498149824983498449854986498749884989499049914992499349944995499649974998499950005001500250035004500550065007500850095010501150125013501450155016501750185019502050215022502350245025502650275028502950305031503250335034503550365037503850395040504150425043504450455046504750485049505050515052505350545055505650575058505950605061506250635064506550665067506850695070507150725073507450755076507750785079508050815082508350845085508650875088508950905091509250935094509550965097509850995100510151025103510451055106510751085109511051115112511351145115511651175118511951205121512251235124512551265127512851295130513151325133513451355136513751385139514051415142514351445145514651475148514951505151515251535154515551565157515851595160516151625163516451655166516751685169517051715172517351745175517651775178517951805181518251835184518551865187518851895190519151925193519451955196519751985199520052015202520352045205520652075208520952105211521252135214521552165217521852195220522152225223522452255226522752285229523052315232523352345235523652375238523952405241524252435244524552465247524852495250525152525253525452555256525752585259526052615262526352645265526652675268526952705271527252735274527552765277527852795280528152825283528452855286528752885289529052915292529352945295529652975298529953005301530253035304530553065307530853095310531153125313531453155316531753185319532053215322532353245325532653275328532953305331533253335334533553365337533853395340534153425343534453455346534753485349535053515352535353545355535653575358535953605361536253635364536553665367536853695370537153725373537453755376537753785379538053815382538353845385538653875388538953905391539253935394539553965397539853995400540154025403540454055406540754085409541054115412541354145415541654175418541954205421542254235424542554265427542854295430543154325433543454355436543754385439544054415442544354445445544654475448544954505451545254535454545554565457545854595460546154625463546454655466546754685469547054715472547354745475547654775478547954805481548254835484548554865487548854895490549154925493549454955496549754985499550055015502550355045505550655075508550955105511551255135514551555165517551855195520552155225523552455255526552755285529553055315532553355345535553655375538553955405541554255435544554555465547554855495550555155525553555455555556555755585559556055615562556355645565556655675568556955705571557255735574557555765577557855795580558155825583558455855586558755885589559055915592559355945595559655975598559956005601560256035604560556065607560856095610561156125613561456155616561756185619562056215622562356245625562656275628562956305631563256335634563556365637563856395640564156425643564456455646564756485649565056515652565356545655565656575658565956605661566256635664566556665667566856695670567156725673567456755676567756785679568056815682568356845685568656875688568956905691569256935694569556965697569856995700570157025703570457055706570757085709571057115712571357145715571657175718571957205721572257235724572557265727572857295730573157325733573457355736573757385739574057415742574357445745574657475748574957505751575257535754575557565757575857595760576157625763576457655766576757685769577057715772577357745775577657775778577957805781578257835784578557865787578857895790579157925793579457955796579757985799580058015802580358045805580658075808580958105811581258135814581558165817581858195820582158225823582458255826582758285829583058315832583358345835583658375838583958405841584258435844584558465847584858495850585158525853585458555856585758585859586058615862586358645865586658675868586958705871587258735874587558765877587858795880588158825883588458855886588758885889589058915892589358945895589658975898589959005901590259035904590559065907590859095910591159125913591459155916591759185919592059215922592359245925592659275928592959305931593259335934593559365937593859395940594159425943594459455946594759485949595059515952595359545955595659575958595959605961596259635964596559665967596859695970597159725973597459755976597759785979598059815982598359845985598659875988598959905991599259935994599559965997599859996000600160026003600460056006600760086009601060116012601360146015601660176018601960206021602260236024602560266027602860296030603160326033603460356036603760386039604060416042604360446045604660476048604960506051605260536054605560566057605860596060606160626063606460656066606760686069607060716072607360746075607660776078607960806081608260836084608560866087608860896090609160926093609460956096609760986099610061016102610361046105610661076108610961106111611261136114611561166117611861196120612161226123612461256126612761286129613061316132613361346135613661376138613961406141614261436144614561466147614861496150615161526153615461556156615761586159616061616162616361646165616661676168616961706171617261736174617561766177617861796180618161826183618461856186618761886189619061916192619361946195619661976198619962006201620262036204620562066207620862096210621162126213621462156216621762186219622062216222622362246225622662276228622962306231623262336234623562366237623862396240624162426243624462456246624762486249625062516252625362546255625662576258625962606261626262636264626562666267626862696270627162726273627462756276627762786279628062816282628362846285628662876288628962906291629262936294629562966297629862996300630163026303630463056306630763086309631063116312631363146315631663176318631963206321632263236324632563266327632863296330633163326333633463356336633763386339634063416342634363446345634663476348634963506351635263536354635563566357635863596360636163626363636463656366636763686369637063716372637363746375637663776378637963806381638263836384638563866387638863896390639163926393639463956396639763986399640064016402640364046405640664076408640964106411641264136414641564166417641864196420642164226423642464256426642764286429643064316432643364346435643664376438643964406441644264436444644564466447644864496450645164526453645464556456645764586459646064616462646364646465646664676468646964706471647264736474647564766477647864796480648164826483648464856486648764886489649064916492649364946495649664976498649965006501650265036504650565066507650865096510651165126513651465156516651765186519652065216522652365246525652665276528652965306531653265336534653565366537653865396540654165426543654465456546654765486549655065516552655365546555655665576558655965606561656265636564656565666567656865696570657165726573657465756576657765786579658065816582658365846585658665876588658965906591659265936594659565966597659865996600660166026603660466056606660766086609661066116612661366146615661666176618661966206621662266236624662566266627662866296630663166326633663466356636663766386639664066416642664366446645664666476648664966506651665266536654665566566657665866596660666166626663666466656666666766686669667066716672667366746675667666776678667966806681668266836684668566866687668866896690669166926693669466956696669766986699670067016702670367046705670667076708670967106711671267136714671567166717671867196720672167226723672467256726672767286729673067316732673367346735673667376738673967406741674267436744674567466747674867496750675167526753675467556756675767586759676067616762676367646765676667676768676967706771677267736774677567766777677867796780678167826783678467856786678767886789679067916792679367946795679667976798679968006801680268036804680568066807680868096810681168126813681468156816681768186819682068216822682368246825682668276828682968306831683268336834683568366837683868396840684168426843684468456846684768486849685068516852685368546855685668576858685968606861686268636864686568666867686868696870687168726873687468756876687768786879688068816882688368846885688668876888688968906891689268936894689568966897689868996900690169026903690469056906690769086909691069116912691369146915691669176918691969206921692269236924692569266927692869296930693169326933693469356936693769386939694069416942694369446945694669476948694969506951695269536954695569566957695869596960696169626963696469656966696769686969697069716972697369746975697669776978697969806981698269836984698569866987698869896990699169926993699469956996699769986999700070017002700370047005700670077008700970107011701270137014701570167017701870197020702170227023702470257026702770287029703070317032703370347035703670377038703970407041704270437044704570467047704870497050705170527053705470557056705770587059706070617062706370647065706670677068706970707071707270737074707570767077707870797080708170827083708470857086708770887089709070917092709370947095709670977098709971007101710271037104710571067107710871097110711171127113711471157116711771187119712071217122712371247125712671277128712971307131713271337134713571367137713871397140714171427143714471457146714771487149715071517152715371547155715671577158715971607161716271637164716571667167716871697170717171727173717471757176717771787179718071817182718371847185718671877188718971907191719271937194719571967197719871997200720172027203720472057206720772087209721072117212721372147215721672177218721972207221722272237224722572267227722872297230723172327233723472357236723772387239724072417242724372447245724672477248724972507251725272537254725572567257725872597260726172627263726472657266726772687269727072717272727372747275727672777278727972807281728272837284728572867287728872897290729172927293729472957296729772987299730073017302730373047305730673077308730973107311731273137314731573167317731873197320732173227323732473257326732773287329733073317332733373347335733673377338733973407341734273437344734573467347734873497350735173527353735473557356735773587359736073617362736373647365736673677368736973707371737273737374737573767377737873797380738173827383738473857386738773887389739073917392739373947395739673977398739974007401740274037404740574067407740874097410741174127413741474157416741774187419742074217422742374247425742674277428742974307431743274337434743574367437743874397440744174427443744474457446744774487449745074517452745374547455745674577458745974607461746274637464746574667467746874697470747174727473747474757476747774787479748074817482748374847485748674877488748974907491749274937494749574967497749874997500750175027503750475057506750775087509751075117512751375147515751675177518751975207521752275237524752575267527752875297530753175327533753475357536753775387539754075417542754375447545754675477548754975507551755275537554755575567557755875597560756175627563756475657566756775687569757075717572757375747575757675777578757975807581758275837584758575867587758875897590759175927593759475957596759775987599760076017602760376047605760676077608760976107611761276137614761576167617761876197620762176227623762476257626762776287629763076317632763376347635763676377638763976407641764276437644764576467647764876497650765176527653765476557656765776587659766076617662766376647665766676677668766976707671767276737674767576767677767876797680768176827683768476857686768776887689769076917692769376947695769676977698769977007701770277037704770577067707770877097710771177127713771477157716771777187719772077217722772377247725772677277728772977307731773277337734773577367737773877397740774177427743774477457746774777487749775077517752775377547755775677577758775977607761776277637764776577667767776877697770777177727773777477757776777777787779778077817782778377847785778677877788778977907791779277937794779577967797779877997800780178027803780478057806780778087809781078117812781378147815781678177818781978207821782278237824782578267827782878297830783178327833783478357836783778387839784078417842784378447845784678477848784978507851785278537854785578567857785878597860786178627863786478657866786778687869787078717872787378747875787678777878787978807881788278837884788578867887788878897890789178927893789478957896789778987899790079017902790379047905790679077908790979107911791279137914791579167917791879197920792179227923792479257926792779287929793079317932793379347935793679377938793979407941794279437944794579467947794879497950795179527953795479557956795779587959796079617962796379647965796679677968796979707971797279737974797579767977797879797980798179827983798479857986798779887989799079917992799379947995799679977998799980008001800280038004800580068007800880098010801180128013801480158016801780188019802080218022802380248025802680278028802980308031803280338034803580368037803880398040804180428043804480458046804780488049805080518052805380548055805680578058805980608061806280638064806580668067806880698070807180728073807480758076807780788079808080818082808380848085808680878088808980908091809280938094809580968097809880998100810181028103810481058106810781088109811081118112811381148115811681178118811981208121812281238124812581268127812881298130813181328133813481358136813781388139814081418142814381448145814681478148814981508151815281538154815581568157815881598160816181628163816481658166816781688169817081718172817381748175817681778178817981808181818281838184818581868187818881898190819181928193819481958196819781988199820082018202820382048205820682078208820982108211821282138214821582168217821882198220822182228223822482258226822782288229823082318232823382348235823682378238823982408241824282438244824582468247824882498250825182528253825482558256825782588259826082618262826382648265826682678268826982708271827282738274827582768277827882798280828182828283828482858286828782888289829082918292829382948295829682978298829983008301830283038304830583068307830883098310831183128313831483158316831783188319832083218322832383248325832683278328832983308331833283338334833583368337833883398340834183428343834483458346834783488349835083518352835383548355835683578358835983608361836283638364836583668367836883698370837183728373837483758376837783788379838083818382838383848385838683878388838983908391839283938394839583968397839883998400840184028403840484058406840784088409841084118412841384148415841684178418841984208421842284238424842584268427842884298430843184328433843484358436843784388439844084418442844384448445844684478448844984508451845284538454845584568457845884598460846184628463846484658466846784688469847084718472847384748475847684778478847984808481848284838484848584868487848884898490849184928493849484958496849784988499850085018502850385048505850685078508850985108511851285138514851585168517851885198520852185228523852485258526852785288529853085318532853385348535853685378538853985408541854285438544854585468547854885498550855185528553855485558556855785588559856085618562856385648565856685678568856985708571857285738574857585768577857885798580858185828583858485858586858785888589859085918592859385948595859685978598859986008601860286038604860586068607860886098610861186128613861486158616861786188619862086218622862386248625862686278628862986308631863286338634863586368637863886398640864186428643864486458646864786488649865086518652865386548655865686578658865986608661866286638664866586668667866886698670867186728673867486758676867786788679868086818682868386848685868686878688868986908691869286938694869586968697869886998700870187028703870487058706870787088709871087118712871387148715871687178718871987208721872287238724872587268727872887298730873187328733873487358736873787388739874087418742874387448745874687478748874987508751875287538754875587568757875887598760876187628763876487658766876787688769877087718772877387748775877687778778877987808781878287838784878587868787878887898790879187928793879487958796879787988799880088018802880388048805880688078808880988108811881288138814881588168817881888198820882188228823882488258826882788288829883088318832883388348835883688378838883988408841884288438844884588468847884888498850885188528853885488558856885788588859886088618862886388648865886688678868886988708871887288738874887588768877887888798880888188828883888488858886888788888889889088918892889388948895889688978898889989008901890289038904890589068907890889098910891189128913891489158916891789188919892089218922892389248925892689278928892989308931893289338934893589368937893889398940894189428943894489458946894789488949895089518952895389548955895689578958895989608961896289638964896589668967896889698970897189728973897489758976897789788979898089818982898389848985898689878988898989908991899289938994899589968997899889999000900190029003900490059006900790089009901090119012901390149015901690179018901990209021902290239024902590269027902890299030903190329033903490359036903790389039904090419042904390449045904690479048904990509051905290539054905590569057905890599060906190629063906490659066906790689069907090719072907390749075907690779078907990809081908290839084908590869087908890899090909190929093909490959096909790989099910091019102910391049105910691079108910991109111911291139114911591169117911891199120912191229123912491259126912791289129913091319132913391349135913691379138913991409141914291439144914591469147914891499150915191529153915491559156915791589159916091619162916391649165916691679168916991709171917291739174917591769177917891799180918191829183918491859186918791889189919091919192919391949195919691979198919992009201920292039204920592069207920892099210921192129213921492159216921792189219922092219222922392249225922692279228922992309231923292339234923592369237923892399240924192429243924492459246924792489249925092519252925392549255925692579258925992609261926292639264926592669267926892699270927192729273927492759276927792789279928092819282928392849285928692879288928992909291929292939294929592969297929892999300930193029303930493059306930793089309931093119312931393149315931693179318931993209321932293239324932593269327932893299330933193329333933493359336933793389339934093419342934393449345934693479348934993509351935293539354935593569357935893599360936193629363936493659366936793689369937093719372937393749375937693779378937993809381938293839384938593869387938893899390939193929393939493959396939793989399940094019402940394049405940694079408940994109411941294139414941594169417941894199420942194229423942494259426942794289429943094319432943394349435943694379438943994409441944294439444944594469447944894499450945194529453945494559456945794589459946094619462946394649465946694679468946994709471947294739474947594769477947894799480948194829483948494859486948794889489949094919492949394949495949694979498949995009501950295039504950595069507950895099510951195129513951495159516951795189519952095219522952395249525952695279528952995309531953295339534953595369537953895399540954195429543954495459546954795489549955095519552955395549555955695579558955995609561956295639564956595669567956895699570957195729573957495759576957795789579958095819582958395849585958695879588958995909591959295939594959595969597959895999600960196029603960496059606960796089609961096119612961396149615961696179618961996209621962296239624962596269627962896299630963196329633963496359636963796389639964096419642964396449645964696479648964996509651965296539654965596569657965896599660966196629663966496659666966796689669967096719672967396749675967696779678967996809681968296839684968596869687968896899690969196929693969496959696969796989699970097019702970397049705970697079708970997109711971297139714971597169717971897199720972197229723972497259726972797289729973097319732973397349735973697379738973997409741974297439744974597469747974897499750975197529753975497559756975797589759976097619762976397649765976697679768976997709771977297739774977597769777977897799780978197829783978497859786978797889789979097919792979397949795979697979798979998009801980298039804980598069807980898099810981198129813981498159816981798189819982098219822982398249825982698279828982998309831983298339834983598369837983898399840984198429843984498459846984798489849985098519852985398549855985698579858985998609861986298639864986598669867986898699870987198729873987498759876987798789879988098819882988398849885988698879888988998909891989298939894989598969897989898999900990199029903990499059906990799089909991099119912991399149915991699179918991999209921992299239924992599269927992899299930993199329933993499359936993799389939994099419942994399449945994699479948994999509951995299539954995599569957995899599960996199629963996499659966996799689969997099719972997399749975997699779978997999809981998299839984998599869987998899899990999199929993999499959996999799989999100001000110002100031000410005100061000710008100091001010011100121001310014100151001610017100181001910020100211002210023100241002510026100271002810029100301003110032100331003410035100361003710038100391004010041100421004310044100451004610047100481004910050100511005210053100541005510056100571005810059100601006110062100631006410065100661006710068100691007010071100721007310074100751007610077100781007910080100811008210083100841008510086100871008810089100901009110092100931009410095100961009710098100991010010101101021010310104101051010610107101081010910110101111011210113101141011510116101171011810119101201012110122101231012410125101261012710128101291013010131101321013310134101351013610137101381013910140101411014210143101441014510146101471014810149101501015110152101531015410155101561015710158101591016010161101621016310164101651016610167
  1. -intro-
  2. Project Gutenberg's A Journey to the Interior of the Earth, by Jules Verne
  3. This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
  4. almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
  5. re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
  6. with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
  7. Title: A Journey to the Interior of the Earth
  8. Author: Jules Verne
  9. Posting Date: December 3, 2010 [EBook #3748]
  10. Release Date: February, 2003
  11. [Last updated: August 19, 2011]
  12. Language: English
  13. Character set encoding: ISO-8859-1
  14. *** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK A JOURNEY TO THE INTERIOR ***
  15. Produced by Norman M. Wolcott.
  16. -intro-
  17. A Journey into the Interior of the Earth
  18. by Jules Verne
  19. [Redactor's Note: The following version of Jules Verne's "Journey
  20. into the Interior of the Earth" was published by Ward, Lock, &Co.,
  21. Ltd., London, in 1877. This version is believed to be the most
  22. faithful rendition into English of this classic currently in the
  23. public domain. The few notes of the translator are located near the
  24. point where they are referenced. The Runic characters in Chapter III
  25. are visible in the HTML version of the text. The character set is
  26. ISO-8891-1, mainly the Windows character set. The translation is by
  27. Frederick Amadeus Malleson.
  28. While the translation is fairly literal, and Malleson (a clergyman)
  29. has taken pains with the scientific portions of the work and added
  30. the chapter headings, he has made some unfortunate emendations mainly
  31. concerning biblical references, and has added a few 'improvements' of
  32. his own, which are detailed below:
  33. III. "_pertubata seu inordinata,_" as Euclid has it."
  34. XXX. cry, "Thalatta! thalatta!" the sea! the sea! The deeply indented
  35. shore was lined with a breadth of fine shining sand, softly
  36. XXXII. hippopotamus. {as if the creator, pressed for time in the
  37. first hours of the world, had assembled several animals into one.}
  38. The colossal mastodon
  39. XXXII. I return to the scriptural periods or ages of the world,
  40. conventionally called 'days,' long before the appearance of man when
  41. the unfinished world was as yet unfitted for his support. {I return
  42. to the biblical epochs of the creation, well in advance of the birth
  43. of man, when the incomplete earth was not yet sufficient for him.}
  44. XXXVIII. (footnote), and which is illustrated in the negro
  45. countenance and in the lowest savages.
  46. XXXIX. of the geologic period. {antediluvian}
  47. (These corrections have kindly been pointed out by Christian S�nchez
  48. <chvsanchez@arnet.com.ar> of the Jules Verne Forum.)]
  49. ----------------------------------------------------------------------
  50. A JOURNEY
  51. INTO THE
  52. INTERIOR OF THE EARTH
  53. by
  54. Jules Verne
  55. ----------------------------------------------------------------------
  56. PREFACE
  57. THE "Voyages Extraordinaires" of M. Jules Verne deserve to be made
  58. widely known in English-speaking countries by means of carefully
  59. prepared translations. Witty and ingenious adaptations of the
  60. researches and discoveries of modern science to the popular taste,
  61. which demands that these should be presented to ordinary readers in
  62. the lighter form of cleverly mingled truth and fiction, these books
  63. will assuredly be read with profit and delight, especially by English
  64. youth. Certainly no writer before M. Jules Verne has been so happy in
  65. weaving together in judicious combination severe scientific truth
  66. with a charming exercise of playful imagination.
  67. Iceland, the starting point of the marvellous underground journey
  68. imagined in this volume, is invested at the present time with a
  69. painful interest in consequence of the disastrous eruptions last
  70. Easter Day, which covered with lava and ashes the poor and scanty
  71. vegetation upon which four thousand persons were partly dependent for
  72. the means of subsistence. For a long time to come the natives of that
  73. interesting island, who cleave to their desert home with all that
  74. _amor patriae_ which is so much more easily understood than
  75. explained, will look, and look not in vain, for the help of those on
  76. whom fall the smiles of a kindlier sun in regions not torn by
  77. earthquakes nor blasted and ravaged by volcanic fires. Will the
  78. readers of this little book, who, are gifted with the means of
  79. indulging in the luxury of extended beneficence, remember the
  80. distress of their brethren in the far north, whom distance has not
  81. barred from the claim of being counted our "neighbours"? And whatever
  82. their humane feelings may prompt them to bestow will be gladly added
  83. to the Mansion-House Iceland Relief Fund.
  84. In his desire to ascertain how far the picture of Iceland, drawn in
  85. the work of Jules Verne is a correct one, the translator hopes in the
  86. course of a mail or two to receive a communication from a leading man
  87. of science in the island, which may furnish matter for additional
  88. information in a future edition.
  89. The scientific portion of the French original is not without a few
  90. errors, which the translator, with the kind assistance of Mr. Cameron
  91. of H. M. Geological Survey, has ventured to point out and correct. It
  92. is scarcely to be expected in a work in which the element of
  93. amusement is intended to enter more largely than that of scientific
  94. instruction, that any great degree of accuracy should be arrived at.
  95. Yet the translator hopes that what trifling deviations from the text
  96. or corrections in foot notes he is responsible for, will have done a
  97. little towards the increased usefulness of the work.
  98. F. A. M.
  99. The Vicarage,
  100. Broughton-in-Furness
  101. ----------------------------------------------------------------------
  102. CONTENTS
  103. I THE PROFESSOR AND HIS FAMILY
  104. II A MYSTERY TO BE SOLVED AT ANY PRICE
  105. III THE RUNIC WRITING EXERCISES THE PROFESSOR
  106. IV THE ENEMY TO BE STARVED INTO SUBMISSION
  107. V FAMINE, THEN VICTORY, FOLLOWED BY DISMAY
  108. VI EXCITING DISCUSSIONS ABOUT AN UNPARALLELED EXERCISE
  109. VII A WOMAN'S COURAGE
  110. VIII SERIOUS PREPARATIONS FOR VERTICAL DESCENT
  111. IX ICELAND, BUT WHAT NEXT?
  112. X INTERESTING CONVERSATIONS WITH ICELANDIC SAVANTS
  113. XI A GUIDE FOUND TO THE CENTRE OF THE EARTH
  114. XII A BARREN LAND
  115. XIII HOSPITALITY UNDER THE ARCTIC CIRCLE
  116. XIV BUT ARCTICS CAN BE INHOSPITABLE, TOO
  117. XV SN�FFEL AT LAST
  118. XVI BOLDLY DOWN THE CRATER
  119. XVII VERTICAL DESCENT
  120. XVIII THE WONDERS OF TERRESTIAL DEPTHS
  121. XIX GEOLOGICAL STUDIES IN SITU
  122. XX THE FIRST SIGNS OF DISTRESS
  123. XXI COMPASSION FUSES THE PROFESSOR'S HEART
  124. XXII TOTAL FAILURE OF WATER
  125. XXIII WATER DISCOVERED
  126. XXIV WELL SAID, OLD MOLE! CANST THOU WORK
  127. IN THE GROUND SO FAST?
  128. XXV DE PROFUNDIS
  129. XXVI THE WORST PERIL OF ALL
  130. XXVII LOST IN THE BOWELS OF THE EARTH
  131. XXVIII THE RESCUE IN THE WHISPERING GALLERY
  132. XXIX THALATTA! THALATTA!
  133. XXX A NEW MARE INTERNUM
  134. XXXI PREPARATIONS FOR A VOYAGE OF DISCOVERY
  135. XXXII WONDERS OF THE DEEP
  136. XXXIII A BATTLE OF MONSTERS
  137. XXXIV THE GREAT GEYSER
  138. XXXV AN ELECTRIC STORM
  139. XXXVI CALM PHILOSOPHIC DISCUSSIONS
  140. XXXVII THE LIEDENBROCK MUSEUM OF GEOLOGY
  141. XXXVIII THE PROFESSOR IN HIS CHAIR AGAIN
  142. XXXIX FOREST SCENERY ILLUMINATED BY ELECTRICITY
  143. XL PREPARATIONS FOR BLASTING A PASSAGE
  144. TO THE CENTRE OF THE EARTH
  145. XLI THE GREAT EXPLOSION AND THE RUSH DOWN BELOW
  146. XLII HEADLONG SPEED UPWARD THROUGH THE HORRORS OF DARKNESS
  147. XLIII SHOT OUT OF A VOLCANO AT LAST!
  148. XLIV SUNNY LANDS IN THE BLUE MEDITERRANEAN
  149. XLV ALL'S WELL THAT ENDS WELL
  150. ----------------------------------------------------------------------
  151. A JOURNEY INTO THE INTERIOR OF THE EARTH
  152. CHAPTER I.
  153. THE PROFESSOR AND HIS FAMILY
  154. On the 24th of May, 1863, my uncle, Professor Liedenbrock, rushed
  155. into his little house, No. 19 K�nigstrasse, one of the oldest streets
  156. in the oldest portion of the city of Hamburg.
  157. Martha must have concluded that she was very much behindhand, for the
  158. dinner had only just been put into the oven.
  159. "Well, now," said I to myself, "if that most impatient of men is
  160. hungry, what a disturbance he will make!"
  161. "M. Liedenbrock so soon!" cried poor Martha in great alarm, half
  162. opening the dining-room door.
  163. "Yes, Martha; but very likely the dinner is not half cooked, for it
  164. is not two yet. Saint Michael's clock has only just struck half-past
  165. one."
  166. "Then why has the master come home so soon?"
  167. "Perhaps he will tell us that himself."
  168. "Here he is, Monsieur Axel; I will run and hide myself while you
  169. argue with him."
  170. And Martha retreated in safety into her own dominions.
  171. I was left alone. But how was it possible for a man of my undecided
  172. turn of mind to argue successfully with so irascible a person as the
  173. Professor? With this persuasion I was hurrying away to my own little
  174. retreat upstairs, when the street door creaked upon its hinges; heavy
  175. feet made the whole flight of stairs to shake; and the master of the
  176. house, passing rapidly through the dining-room, threw himself in
  177. haste into his own sanctum.
  178. But on his rapid way he had found time to fling his hazel stick into
  179. a corner, his rough broadbrim upon the table, and these few emphatic
  180. words at his nephew:
  181. "Axel, follow me!"
  182. I had scarcely had time to move when the Professor was again shouting
  183. after me:
  184. "What! not come yet?"
  185. And I rushed into my redoubtable master's study.
  186. Otto Liedenbrock had no mischief in him, I willingly allow that; but
  187. unless he very considerably changes as he grows older, at the end he
  188. will be a most original character.
  189. He was professor at the Johann�um, and was delivering a series of
  190. lectures on mineralogy, in the course of every one of which he broke
  191. into a passion once or twice at least. Not at all that he was
  192. over-anxious about the improvement of his class, or about the degree
  193. of attention with which they listened to him, or the success which
  194. might eventually crown his labours. Such little matters of detail
  195. never troubled him much. His teaching was as the German philosophy
  196. calls it, 'subjective'; it was to benefit himself, not others. He was
  197. a learned egotist. He was a well of science, and the pulleys worked
  198. uneasily when you wanted to draw anything out of it. In a word, he
  199. was a learned miser.
  200. Germany has not a few professors of this sort.
  201. To his misfortune, my uncle was not gifted with a sufficiently rapid
  202. utterance; not, to be sure, when he was talking at home, but
  203. certainly in his public delivery; this is a want much to be deplored
  204. in a speaker. The fact is, that during the course of his lectures at
  205. the Johann�um, the Professor often came to a complete standstill; he
  206. fought with wilful words that refused to pass his struggling lips,
  207. such words as resist and distend the cheeks, and at last break out
  208. into the unasked-for shape of a round and most unscientific oath:
  209. then his fury would gradually abate.
  210. Now in mineralogy there are many half-Greek and half-Latin terms,
  211. very hard to articulate, and which would be most trying to a poet's
  212. measures. I don't wish to say a word against so respectable a
  213. science, far be that from me. True, in the august presence of
  214. rhombohedral crystals, retinasphaltic resins, gehlenites, Fassaites,
  215. molybdenites, tungstates of manganese, and titanite of zirconium,
  216. why, the most facile of tongues may make a slip now and then.
  217. It therefore happened that this venial fault of my uncle's came to be
  218. pretty well understood in time, and an unfair advantage was taken of
  219. it; the students laid wait for him in dangerous places, and when he
  220. began to stumble, loud was the laughter, which is not in good taste,
  221. not even in Germans. And if there was always a full audience to
  222. honour the Liedenbrock courses, I should be sorry to conjecture how
  223. many came to make merry at my uncle's expense.
  224. Nevertheless my good uncle was a man of deep learning--a fact I am
  225. most anxious to assert and reassert. Sometimes he might irretrievably
  226. injure a specimen by his too great ardour in handling it; but still
  227. he united the genius of a true geologist with the keen eye of the
  228. mineralogist. Armed with his hammer, his steel pointer, his magnetic
  229. needles, his blowpipe, and his bottle of nitric acid, he was a
  230. powerful man of science. He would refer any mineral to its proper
  231. place among the six hundred [1] elementary substances now enumerated,
  232. by its fracture, its appearance, its hardness, its fusibility, its
  233. sonorousness, its smell, and its taste.
  234. The name of Liedenbrock was honourably mentioned in colleges and
  235. learned societies. Humphry Davy, [2] Humboldt, Captain Sir John
  236. Franklin, General Sabine, never failed to call upon him on their way
  237. through Hamburg. Becquerel, Ebelman, Brewster, Dumas, Milne-Edwards,
  238. Saint-Claire-Deville frequently consulted him upon the most difficult
  239. problems in chemistry, a science which was indebted to him for
  240. considerable discoveries, for in 1853 there had appeared at Leipzig
  241. an imposing folio by Otto Liedenbrock, entitled, "A Treatise upon
  242. Transcendental Chemistry," with plates; a work, however, which failed
  243. to cover its expenses.
  244. To all these titles to honour let me add that my uncle was the
  245. curator of the museum of mineralogy formed by M. Struve, the Russian
  246. ambassador; a most valuable collection, the fame of which is European.
  247. Such was the gentleman who addressed me in that impetuous manner.
  248. Fancy a tall, spare man, of an iron constitution, and with a fair
  249. complexion which took off a good ten years from the fifty he must own
  250. to. His restless eyes were in incessant motion behind his full-sized
  251. spectacles. His long, thin nose was like a knife blade. Boys have
  252. been heard to remark that that organ was magnetised and attracted
  253. iron filings. But this was merely a mischievous report; it had no
  254. attraction except for snuff, which it seemed to draw to itself in
  255. great quantities.
  256. When I have added, to complete my portrait, that my uncle walked by
  257. mathematical strides of a yard and a half, and that in walking he
  258. kept his fists firmly closed, a sure sign of an irritable
  259. temperament, I think I shall have said enough to disenchant any one
  260. who should by mistake have coveted much of his company.
  261. He lived in his own little house in K�nigstrasse, a structure half
  262. brick and half wood, with a gable cut into steps; it looked upon one
  263. of those winding canals which intersect each other in the middle of
  264. the ancient quarter of Hamburg, and which the great fire of 1842 had
  265. fortunately spared.
  266. [1] Sixty-three. (Tr.)
  267. [2] As Sir Humphry Davy died in 1829, the translator must be pardoned
  268. for pointing out here an anachronism, unless we are to assume that
  269. the learned Professor's celebrity dawned in his earliest years. (Tr.)
  270. It is true that the old house stood slightly off the perpendicular,
  271. and bulged out a little towards the street; its roof sloped a little
  272. to one side, like the cap over the left ear of a Tugendbund student;
  273. its lines wanted accuracy; but after all, it stood firm, thanks to an
  274. old elm which buttressed it in front, and which often in spring sent
  275. its young sprays through the window panes.
  276. My uncle was tolerably well off for a German professor. The house was
  277. his own, and everything in it. The living contents were his
  278. god-daughter Gr�uben, a young Virlandaise of seventeen, Martha, and
  279. myself. As his nephew and an orphan, I became his laboratory
  280. assistant.
  281. I freely confess that I was exceedingly fond of geology and all its
  282. kindred sciences; the blood of a mineralogist was in my veins, and in
  283. the midst of my specimens I was always happy.
  284. In a word, a man might live happily enough in the little old house in
  285. the K�nigstrasse, in spite of the restless impatience of its master,
  286. for although he was a little too excitable--he was very fond of me.
  287. But the man had no notion how to wait; nature herself was too slow
  288. for him. In April, after he had planted in the terra-cotta pots
  289. outside his window seedling plants of mignonette and convolvulus, he
  290. would go and give them a little pull by their leaves to make them
  291. grow faster. In dealing with such a strange individual there was
  292. nothing for it but prompt obedience. I therefore rushed after him.
  293. CHAPTER II.
  294. A MYSTERY TO BE SOLVED AT ANY PRICE
  295. That study of his was a museum, and nothing else. Specimens of
  296. everything known in mineralogy lay there in their places in perfect
  297. order, and correctly named, divided into inflammable, metallic, and
  298. lithoid minerals.
  299. How well I knew all these bits of science! Many a time, instead of
  300. enjoying the company of lads of my own age, I had preferred dusting
  301. these graphites, anthracites, coals, lignites, and peats! And there
  302. were bitumens, resins, organic salts, to be protected from the least
  303. grain of dust; and metals, from iron to gold, metals whose current
  304. value altogether disappeared in the presence of the republican
  305. equality of scientific specimens; and stones too, enough to rebuild
  306. entirely the house in K�nigstrasse, even with a handsome additional
  307. room, which would have suited me admirably.
  308. But on entering this study now I thought of none of all these
  309. wonders; my uncle alone filled my thoughts. He had thrown himself
  310. into a velvet easy-chair, and was grasping between his hands a book
  311. over which he bent, pondering with intense admiration.
  312. "Here's a remarkable book! What a wonderful book!" he was exclaiming.
  313. These ejaculations brought to my mind the fact that my uncle was
  314. liable to occasional fits of bibliomania; but no old book had any
  315. value in his eyes unless it had the virtue of being nowhere else to
  316. be found, or, at any rate, of being illegible.
  317. "Well, now; don't you see it yet? Why I have got a priceless
  318. treasure, that I found his morning, in rummaging in old Hevelius's
  319. shop, the Jew."
  320. "Magnificent!" I replied, with a good imitation of enthusiasm.
  321. What was the good of all this fuss about an old quarto, bound in
  322. rough calf, a yellow, faded volume, with a ragged seal depending from
  323. it?
  324. But for all that there was no lull yet in the admiring exclamations
  325. of the Professor.
  326. "See," he went on, both asking the questions and supplying the
  327. answers. "Isn't it a beauty? Yes; splendid! Did you ever see such a
  328. binding? Doesn't the book open easily? Yes; it stops open anywhere.
  329. But does it shut equally well? Yes; for the binding and the leaves
  330. are flush, all in a straight line, and no gaps or openings anywhere.
  331. And look at its back, after seven hundred years. Why, Bozerian,
  332. Closs, or Purgold might have been proud of such a binding!"
  333. While rapidly making these comments my uncle kept opening and
  334. shutting the old tome. I really could do no less than ask a question
  335. about its contents, although I did not feel the slightest interest.
  336. "And what is the title of this marvellous work?" I asked with an
  337. affected eagerness which he must have been very blind not to see
  338. through.
  339. "This work," replied my uncle, firing up with renewed enthusiasm,
  340. "this work is the Heims Kringla of Snorre Turlleson, the most famous
  341. Icelandic author of the twelfth century! It is the chronicle of the
  342. Norwegian princes who ruled in Iceland."
  343. "Indeed;" I cried, keeping up wonderfully, "of course it is a German
  344. translation?"
  345. "What!" sharply replied the Professor, "a translation! What should I
  346. do with a translation? This _is_ the Icelandic original, in the
  347. magnificent idiomatic vernacular, which is both rich and simple, and
  348. admits of an infinite variety of grammatical combinations and verbal
  349. modifications."
  350. "Like German." I happily ventured.
  351. "Yes," replied my uncle, shrugging his shoulders; "but, in addition
  352. to all this, the Icelandic has three numbers like the Greek, and
  353. irregular declensions of nouns proper like the Latin."
  354. "Ah!" said I, a little moved out of my indifference; "and is the type
  355. good?"
  356. "Type! What do you mean by talking of type, wretched Axel? Type! Do
  357. you take it for a printed book, you ignorant fool? It is a
  358. manuscript, a Runic manuscript."
  359. "Runic?"
  360. "Yes. Do you want me to explain what that is?"
  361. "Of course not," I replied in the tone of an injured man. But my
  362. uncle persevered, and told me, against my will, of many things I
  363. cared nothing about.
  364. "Runic characters were in use in Iceland in former ages. They were
  365. invented, it is said, by Odin himself. Look there, and wonder,
  366. impious young man, and admire these letters, the invention of the
  367. Scandinavian god!"
  368. Well, well! not knowing what to say, I was going to prostrate myself
  369. before this wonderful book, a way of answering equally pleasing to
  370. gods and kings, and which has the advantage of never giving them any
  371. embarrassment, when a little incident happened to divert conversation
  372. into another channel.
  373. This was the appearance of a dirty slip of parchment, which slipped
  374. out of the volume and fell upon the floor.
  375. My uncle pounced upon this shred with incredible avidity. An old
  376. document, enclosed an immemorial time within the folds of this old
  377. book, had for him an immeasurable value.
  378. "What's this?" he cried.
  379. And he laid out upon the table a piece of parchment, five inches by
  380. three, and along which were traced certain mysterious characters.
  381. Here is the exact facsimile. I think it important to let these
  382. strange signs be publicly known, for they were the means of drawing
  383. on Professor Liedenbrock and his nephew to undertake the most
  384. wonderful expedition of the nineteenth century.
  385. [Runic glyphs occur here]
  386. The Professor mused a few moments over this series of characters;
  387. then raising his spectacles he pronounced:
  388. "These are Runic letters; they are exactly like those of the
  389. manuscript of Snorre Turlleson. But, what on earth is their meaning?"
  390. Runic letters appearing to my mind to be an invention of the learned
  391. to mystify this poor world, I was not sorry to see my uncle suffering
  392. the pangs of mystification. At least, so it seemed to me, judging
  393. from his fingers, which were beginning to work with terrible energy.
  394. "It is certainly old Icelandic," he muttered between his teeth.
  395. And Professor Liedenbrock must have known, for he was acknowledged to
  396. be quite a polyglot. Not that he could speak fluently in the two
  397. thousand languages and twelve thousand dialects which are spoken on
  398. the earth, but he knew at least his share of them.
  399. So he was going, in the presence of this difficulty, to give way to
  400. all the impetuosity of his character, and I was preparing for a
  401. violent outbreak, when two o'clock struck by the little timepiece
  402. over the fireplace.
  403. At that moment our good housekeeper Martha opened the study door,
  404. saying:
  405. "Dinner is ready!"
  406. I am afraid he sent that soup to where it would boil away to nothing,
  407. and Martha took to her heels for safety. I followed her, and hardly
  408. knowing how I got there I found myself seated in my usual place.
  409. I waited a few minutes. No Professor came. Never within my
  410. remembrance had he missed the important ceremonial of dinner. And yet
  411. what a good dinner it was! There was parsley soup, an omelette of ham
  412. garnished with spiced sorrel, a fillet of veal with compote of
  413. prunes; for dessert, crystallised fruit; the whole washed down with
  414. sweet Moselle.
  415. All this my uncle was going to sacrifice to a bit of old parchment.
  416. As an affectionate and attentive nephew I considered it my duty to
  417. eat for him as well as for myself, which I did conscientiously.
  418. "I have never known such a thing," said Martha. "M. Liedenbrock is
  419. not at table!"
  420. "Who could have believed it?" I said, with my mouth full.
  421. "Something serious is going to happen," said the servant, shaking her
  422. head.
  423. My opinion was, that nothing more serious would happen than an awful
  424. scene when my uncle should have discovered that his dinner was
  425. devoured. I had come to the last of the fruit when a very loud voice
  426. tore me away from the pleasures of my dessert. With one spring I
  427. bounded out of the dining-room into the study.
  428. CHAPTER III.
  429. THE RUNIC WRITING EXERCISES THE PROFESSOR
  430. "Undoubtedly it is Runic," said the Professor, bending his brows;
  431. "but there is a secret in it, and I mean to discover the key."
  432. A violent gesture finished the sentence.
  433. "Sit there," he added, holding out his fist towards the table. "Sit
  434. there, and write."
  435. I was seated in a trice.
  436. "Now I will dictate to you every letter of our alphabet which
  437. corresponds with each of these Icelandic characters. We will see what
  438. that will give us. But, by St. Michael, if you should dare to deceive
  439. me--"
  440. The dictation commenced. I did my best. Every letter was given me one
  441. after the other, with the following remarkable result:
  442. mm.rnlls esrevel seecIde
  443. sgtssmf vnteief niedrke
  444. kt,samn atrateS saodrrn
  445. emtnaeI nvaect rrilSa
  446. Atsaar .nvcrc ieaabs
  447. ccrmi eevtVl frAntv
  448. dt,iac oseibo KediiI
  449. [Redactor: In the original version the initial letter is an 'm' with
  450. a superscore over it. It is my supposition that this is the
  451. translator's way of writing 'mm' and I have replaced it accordingly,
  452. since our typography does not allow such a character.]
  453. When this work was ended my uncle tore the paper from me and examined
  454. it attentively for a long time.
  455. "What does it all mean?" he kept repeating mechanically.
  456. Upon my honour I could not have enlightened him. Besides he did not
  457. ask me, and he went on talking to himself.
  458. "This is what is called a cryptogram, or cipher," he said, "in which
  459. letters are purposely thrown in confusion, which if properly arranged
  460. would reveal their sense. Only think that under this jargon there may
  461. lie concealed the clue to some great discovery!"
  462. As for me, I was of opinion that there was nothing at all, in it;
  463. though, of course, I took care not to say so.
  464. Then the Professor took the book and the parchment, and diligently
  465. compared them together.
  466. "These two writings are not by the same hand," he said; "the cipher
  467. is of later date than the book, an undoubted proof of which I see in
  468. a moment. The first letter is a double m, a letter which is not to be
  469. found in Turlleson's book, and which was only added to the alphabet
  470. in the fourteenth century. Therefore there are two hundred years
  471. between the manuscript and the document."
  472. I admitted that this was a strictly logical conclusion.
  473. "I am therefore led to imagine," continued my uncle, "that some
  474. possessor of this book wrote these mysterious letters. But who was
  475. that possessor? Is his name nowhere to be found in the manuscript?"
  476. My uncle raised his spectacles, took up a strong lens, and carefully
  477. examined the blank pages of the book. On the front of the second, the
  478. title-page, he noticed a sort of stain which looked like an ink blot.
  479. But in looking at it very closely he thought he could distinguish
  480. some half-effaced letters. My uncle at once fastened upon this as the
  481. centre of interest, and he laboured at that blot, until by the help
  482. of his microscope he ended by making out the following Runic
  483. characters which he read without difficulty.
  484. "Arne Saknussemm!" he cried in triumph. "Why that is the name of
  485. another Icelander, a savant of the sixteenth century, a celebrated
  486. alchemist!"
  487. I gazed at my uncle with satisfactory admiration.
  488. "Those alchemists," he resumed, "Avicenna, Bacon, Lully, Paracelsus,
  489. were the real and only savants of their time. They made discoveries
  490. at which we are astonished. Has not this Saknussemm concealed under
  491. his cryptogram some surprising invention? It is so; it must be so!"
  492. The Professor's imagination took fire at this hypothesis.
  493. "No doubt," I ventured to reply, "but what interest would he have in
  494. thus hiding so marvellous a discovery?"
  495. "Why? Why? How can I tell? Did not Galileo do the same by Saturn? We
  496. shall see. I will get at the secret of this document, and I will
  497. neither sleep nor eat until I have found it out."
  498. My comment on this was a half-suppressed "Oh!"
  499. "Nor you either, Axel," he added.
  500. "The deuce!" said I to myself; "then it is lucky I have eaten two
  501. dinners to-day!"
  502. "First of all we must find out the key to this cipher; that cannot be
  503. difficult."
  504. At these words I quickly raised my head; but my uncle went on
  505. soliloquising.
  506. "There's nothing easier. In this document there are a hundred and
  507. thirty-two letters, viz., seventy-seven consonants and fifty-five
  508. vowels. This is the proportion found in southern languages, whilst
  509. northern tongues are much richer in consonants; therefore this is in
  510. a southern language."
  511. These were very fair conclusions, I thought.
  512. "But what language is it?"
  513. Here I looked for a display of learning, but I met instead with
  514. profound analysis.
  515. "This Saknussemm," he went on, "was a very well-informed man; now
  516. since he was not writing in his own mother tongue, he would naturally
  517. select that which was currently adopted by the choice spirits of the
  518. sixteenth century; I mean Latin. If I am mistaken, I can but try
  519. Spanish, French, Italian, Greek, or Hebrew. But the savants of the
  520. sixteenth century generally wrote in Latin. I am therefore entitled
  521. to pronounce this, � priori, to be Latin. It is Latin."
  522. I jumped up in my chair. My Latin memories rose in revolt against the
  523. notion that these barbarous words could belong to the sweet language
  524. of Virgil.
  525. "Yes, it is Latin," my uncle went on; "but it is Latin confused and
  526. in disorder; "_pertubata seu inordinata,_" as Euclid has it."
  527. "Very well," thought I, "if you can bring order out of that
  528. confusion, my dear uncle, you are a clever man."
  529. "Let us examine carefully," said he again, taking up the leaf upon
  530. which I had written. "Here is a series of one hundred and thirty-two
  531. letters in apparent disorder. There are words consisting of
  532. consonants only, as _nrrlls;_ others, on the other hand, in which
  533. vowels predominate, as for instance the fifth, _uneeief,_ or the last
  534. but one, _oseibo_. Now this arrangement has evidently not been
  535. premeditated; it has arisen mathematically in obedience to the
  536. unknown law which has ruled in the succession of these letters. It
  537. appears to me a certainty that the original sentence was written in a
  538. proper manner, and afterwards distorted by a law which we have yet to
  539. discover. Whoever possesses the key of this cipher will read it with
  540. fluency. What is that key? Axel, have you got it?"
  541. I answered not a word, and for a very good reason. My eyes had fallen
  542. upon a charming picture, suspended against the wall, the portrait of
  543. Gr�uben. My uncle's ward was at that time at Altona, staying with a
  544. relation, and in her absence I was very downhearted; for I may
  545. confess it to you now, the pretty Virlandaise and the professor's
  546. nephew loved each other with a patience and a calmness entirely
  547. German. We had become engaged unknown to my uncle, who was too much
  548. taken up with geology to be able to enter into such feelings as ours.
  549. Gr�uben was a lovely blue-eyed blonde, rather given to gravity and
  550. seriousness; but that did not prevent her from loving me very
  551. sincerely. As for me, I adored her, if there is such a word in the
  552. German language. Thus it happened that the picture of my pretty
  553. Virlandaise threw me in a moment out of the world of realities into
  554. that of memory and fancy.
  555. There looked down upon me the faithful companion of my labours and my
  556. recreations. Every day she helped me to arrange my uncle's precious
  557. specimens; she and I labelled them together. Mademoiselle Gr�uben was
  558. an accomplished mineralogist; she could have taught a few things to a
  559. savant. She was fond of investigating abstruse scientific questions.
  560. What pleasant hours we have spent in study; and how often I envied
  561. the very stones which she handled with her charming fingers.
  562. Then, when our leisure hours came, we used to go out together and
  563. turn into the shady avenues by the Alster, and went happily side by
  564. side up to the old windmill, which forms such an improvement to the
  565. landscape at the head of the lake. On the road we chatted hand in
  566. hand; I told her amusing tales at which she laughed heartily. Then we
  567. reached the banks of the Elbe, and after having bid good-bye to the
  568. swan, sailing gracefully amidst the white water lilies, we returned
  569. to the quay by the steamer.
  570. That is just where I was in my dream, when my uncle with a vehement
  571. thump on the table dragged me back to the realities of life.
  572. "Come," said he, "the very first idea which would come into any one's
  573. head to confuse the letters of a sentence would be to write the words
  574. vertically instead of horizontally."
  575. "Indeed!" said I.
  576. "Now we must see what would be the effect of that, Axel; put down
  577. upon this paper any sentence you like, only instead of arranging the
  578. letters in the usual way, one after the other, place them in
  579. succession in vertical columns, so as to group them together in five
  580. or six vertical lines."
  581. I caught his meaning, and immediately produced the following literary
  582. wonder:
  583. I y l o a u
  584. l o l w r b
  585. o u , n G e
  586. v w m d r n
  587. e e y e a !
  588. "Good," said the professor, without reading them, "now set down those
  589. words in a horizontal line."
  590. I obeyed, and with this result:
  591. Iyloau lolwrb ou,nGe vwmdrn eeyea!
  592. "Excellent!" said my uncle, taking the paper hastily out of my hands.
  593. "This begins to look just like an ancient document: the vowels and
  594. the consonants are grouped together in equal disorder; there are even
  595. capitals in the middle of words, and commas too, just as in
  596. Saknussemm's parchment."
  597. I considered these remarks very clever.
  598. "Now," said my uncle, looking straight at me, "to read the sentence
  599. which you have just written, and with which I am wholly unacquainted,
  600. I shall only have to take the first letter of each word, then the
  601. second, the third, and so forth."
  602. And my uncle, to his great astonishment, and my much greater, read:
  603. "I love you well, my own dear Gr�uben!"
  604. "Hallo!" cried the Professor.
  605. Yes, indeed, without knowing what I was about, like an awkward and
  606. unlucky lover, I had compromised myself by writing this unfortunate
  607. sentence.
  608. "Aha! you are in love with Gr�uben?" he said, with the right look for
  609. a guardian.
  610. "Yes; no!" I stammered.
  611. "You love Gr�uben," he went on once or twice dreamily. "Well, let us
  612. apply the process I have suggested to the document in question."
  613. My uncle, falling back into his absorbing contemplations, had already
  614. forgotten my imprudent words. I merely say imprudent, for the great
  615. mind of so learned a man of course had no place for love affairs, and
  616. happily the grand business of the document gained me the victory.
  617. Just as the moment of the supreme experiment arrived the Professor's
  618. eyes flashed right through his spectacles. There was a quivering in
  619. his fingers as he grasped the old parchment. He was deeply moved. At
  620. last he gave a preliminary cough, and with profound gravity, naming
  621. in succession the first, then the second letter of each word, he
  622. dictated me the following:
  623. mmessvnkaSenrA.icefdoK.segnittamvrtn
  624. ecertserrette,rotaisadva,ednecsedsadne
  625. lacartniiilvIsiratracSarbmvtabiledmek
  626. meretarcsilvcoIsleffenSnI.
  627. I confess I felt considerably excited in coming to the end; these
  628. letters named, one at a time, had carried no sense to my mind; I
  629. therefore waited for the Professor with great pomp to unfold the
  630. magnificent but hidden Latin of this mysterious phrase.
  631. But who could have foretold the result? A violent thump made the
  632. furniture rattle, and spilt some ink, and my pen dropped from between
  633. my fingers.
  634. "That's not it," cried my uncle, "there's no sense in it."
  635. Then darting out like a shot, bowling down stairs like an avalanche,
  636. he rushed into the K�nigstrasse and fled.
  637. CHAPTER IV.
  638. THE ENEMY TO BE STARVED INTO SUBMISSION
  639. "He is gone!" cried Martha, running out of her kitchen at the noise
  640. of the violent slamming of doors.
  641. "Yes," I replied, "completely gone."
  642. "Well; and how about his dinner?" said the old servant.
  643. "He won't have any."
  644. "And his supper?"
  645. "He won't have any."
  646. "What?" cried Martha, with clasped hands.
  647. "No, my dear Martha, he will eat no more. No one in the house is to
  648. eat anything at all. Uncle Liedenbrock is going to make us all fast
  649. until he has succeeded in deciphering an undecipherable scrawl."
  650. "Oh, my dear! must we then all die of hunger?"
  651. I hardly dared to confess that, with so absolute a ruler as my uncle,
  652. this fate was inevitable.
  653. The old servant, visibly moved, returned to the kitchen, moaning
  654. piteously.
  655. When I was alone, I thought I would go and tell Gr�uben all about it.
  656. But how should I be able to escape from the house? The Professor
  657. might return at any moment. And suppose he called me? And suppose he
  658. tackled me again with this logomachy, which might vainly have been
  659. set before ancient Oedipus. And if I did not obey his call, who could
  660. answer for what might happen?
  661. The wisest course was to remain where I was. A mineralogist at
  662. Besan�on had just sent us a collection of siliceous nodules, which I
  663. had to classify: so I set to work; I sorted, labelled, and arranged
  664. in their own glass case all these hollow specimens, in the cavity of
  665. each of which was a nest of little crystals.
  666. But this work did not succeed in absorbing all my attention. That old
  667. document kept working in my brain. My head throbbed with excitement,
  668. and I felt an undefined uneasiness. I was possessed with a
  669. presentiment of coming evil.
  670. In an hour my nodules were all arranged upon successive shelves. Then
  671. I dropped down into the old velvet armchair, my head thrown back and
  672. my hands joined over it. I lighted my long crooked pipe, with a
  673. painting on it of an idle-looking naiad; then I amused myself
  674. watching the process of the conversion of the tobacco into carbon,
  675. which was by slow degrees making my naiad into a negress. Now and
  676. then I listened to hear whether a well-known step was on the stairs.
  677. No. Where could my uncle be at that moment? I fancied him running
  678. under the noble trees which line the road to Altona, gesticulating,
  679. making shots with his cane, thrashing the long grass, cutting the
  680. heads off the thistles, and disturbing the contemplative storks in
  681. their peaceful solitude.
  682. Would he return in triumph or in discouragement? Which would get the
  683. upper hand, he or the secret? I was thus asking myself questions, and
  684. mechanically taking between my fingers the sheet of paper
  685. mysteriously disfigured with the incomprehensible succession of
  686. letters I had written down; and I repeated to myself "What does it
  687. all mean?"
  688. I sought to group the letters so as to form words. Quite impossible!
  689. When I put them together by twos, threes, fives or sixes, nothing
  690. came of it but nonsense. To be sure the fourteenth, fifteenth and
  691. sixteenth letters made the English word 'ice'; the eighty-third and
  692. two following made 'sir'; and in the midst of the document, in the
  693. second and third lines, I observed the words, "rots," "mutabile,"
  694. "ira," "net," "atra."
  695. "Come now," I thought, "these words seem to justify my uncle's view
  696. about the language of the document. In the fourth line appeared the
  697. word "luco", which means a sacred wood. It is true that in the third
  698. line was the word "tabiled", which looked like Hebrew, and in the
  699. last the purely French words "mer", "arc", "mere.""
  700. All this was enough to drive a poor fellow crazy. Four different
  701. languages in this ridiculous sentence! What connection could there
  702. possibly be between such words as ice, sir, anger, cruel, sacred
  703. wood, changeable, mother, bow, and sea? The first and the last might
  704. have something to do with each other; it was not at all surprising
  705. that in a document written in Iceland there should be mention of a
  706. sea of ice; but it was quite another thing to get to the end of this
  707. cryptogram with so small a clue. So I was struggling with an
  708. insurmountable difficulty; my brain got heated, my eyes watered over
  709. that sheet of paper; its hundred and thirty-two letters seemed to
  710. flutter and fly around me like those motes of mingled light and
  711. darkness which float in the air around the head when the blood is
  712. rushing upwards with undue violence. I was a prey to a kind of
  713. hallucination; I was stifling; I wanted air. Unconsciously I fanned
  714. myself with the bit of paper, the back and front of which
  715. successively came before my eyes. What was my surprise when, in one
  716. of those rapid revolutions, at the moment when the back was turned to
  717. me I thought I caught sight of the Latin words "craterem,"
  718. "terrestre," and others.
  719. A sudden light burst in upon me; these hints alone gave me the first
  720. glimpse of the truth; I had discovered the key to the cipher. To read
  721. the document, it would not even be necessary to read it through the
  722. paper. Such as it was, just such as it had been dictated to me, so it
  723. might be spelt out with ease. All those ingenious professorial
  724. combinations were coming right. He was right as to the arrangement of
  725. the letters; he was right as to the language. He had been within a
  726. hair's breadth of reading this Latin document from end to end; but
  727. that hair's breadth, chance had given it to me!
  728. You may be sure I felt stirred up. My eyes were dim, I could scarcely
  729. see. I had laid the paper upon the table. At a glance I could tell
  730. the whole secret.
  731. At last I became more calm. I made a wise resolve to walk twice round
  732. the room quietly and settle my nerves, and then I returned into the
  733. deep gulf of the huge armchair.
  734. "Now I'll read it," I cried, after having well distended my lungs
  735. with air.
  736. I leaned over the table; I laid my finger successively upon every
  737. letter; and without a pause, without one moment's hesitation, I read
  738. off the whole sentence aloud.
  739. Stupefaction! terror! I sat overwhelmed as if with a sudden deadly
  740. blow. What! that which I read had actually, really been done! A
  741. mortal man had had the audacity to penetrate! . . .
  742. "Ah!" I cried, springing up. "But no! no! My uncle shall never know
  743. it. He would insist upon doing it too. He would want to know all
  744. about it. Ropes could not hold him, such a determined geologist as he
  745. is! He would start, he would, in spite of everything and everybody,
  746. and he would take me with him, and we should never get back. No,
  747. never! never!"
  748. My over-excitement was beyond all description.
  749. "No! no! it shall not be," I declared energetically; "and as it is in
  750. my power to prevent the knowledge of it coming into the mind of my
  751. tyrant, I will do it. By dint of turning this document round and
  752. round, he too might discover the key. I will destroy it."
  753. There was a little fire left on the hearth. I seized not only the
  754. paper but Saknussemm's parchment; with a feverish hand I was about to
  755. fling it all upon the coals and utterly destroy and abolish this
  756. dangerous secret, when the study door opened, and my uncle appeared.
  757. CHAPTER V.
  758. FAMINE, THEN VICTORY, FOLLOWED BY DISMAY
  759. I had only just time to replace the unfortunate document upon the
  760. table.
  761. Professor Liedenbrock seemed to be greatly abstracted.
  762. The ruling thought gave him no rest. Evidently he had gone deeply
  763. into the matter, analytically and with profound scrutiny. He had
  764. brought all the resources of his mind to bear upon it during his
  765. walk, and he had come back to apply some new combination.
  766. He sat in his armchair, and pen in hand he began what looked very
  767. much like algebraic formula: I followed with my eyes his trembling
  768. hands, I took count of every movement. Might not some unhoped-for
  769. result come of it? I trembled, too, very unnecessarily, since the
  770. true key was in my hands, and no other would open the secret.
  771. For three long hours my uncle worked on without a word, without
  772. lifting his head; rubbing out, beginning again, then rubbing out
  773. again, and so on a hundred times.
  774. I knew very well that if he succeeded in setting down these letters
  775. in every possible relative position, the sentence would come out. But
  776. I knew also that twenty letters alone could form two quintillions,
  777. four hundred and thirty-two quadrillions, nine hundred and two
  778. trillions, eight billions, a hundred and seventy-six millions, six
  779. hundred and forty thousand combinations. Now, here were a hundred and
  780. thirty-two letters in this sentence, and these hundred and thirty-two
  781. letters would give a number of different sentences, each made up of
  782. at least a hundred and thirty-three figures, a number which passed
  783. far beyond all calculation or conception.
  784. So I felt reassured as far as regarded this heroic method of solving
  785. the difficulty.
  786. But time was passing away; night came on; the street noises ceased;
  787. my uncle, bending over his task, noticed nothing, not even Martha
  788. half opening the door; he heard not a sound, not even that excellent
  789. woman saying:
  790. "Will not monsieur take any supper to-night?"
  791. And poor Martha had to go away unanswered. As for me, after long
  792. resistance, I was overcome by sleep, and fell off at the end of the
  793. sofa, while uncle Liedenbrock went on calculating and rubbing out his
  794. calculations.
  795. When I awoke next morning that indefatigable worker was still at his
  796. post. His red eyes, his pale complexion, his hair tangled between his
  797. feverish fingers, the red spots on his cheeks, revealed his desperate
  798. struggle with impossibilities, and the weariness of spirit, the
  799. mental wrestlings he must have undergone all through that unhappy
  800. night.
  801. To tell the plain truth, I pitied him. In spite of the reproaches
  802. which I considered I had a right to lay upon him, a certain feeling
  803. of compassion was beginning to gain upon me. The poor man was so
  804. entirely taken up with his one idea that he had even forgotten how to
  805. get angry. All the strength of his feelings was concentrated upon one
  806. point alone; and as their usual vent was closed, it was to be feared
  807. lest extreme tension should give rise to an explosion sooner or later.
  808. I might with a word have loosened the screw of the steel vice that
  809. was crushing his brain; but that word I would not speak.
  810. Yet I was not an ill-natured fellow. Why was I dumb at such a crisis?
  811. Why so insensible to my uncle's interests?
  812. "No, no," I repeated, "I shall not speak. He would insist upon going;
  813. nothing on earth could stop him. His imagination is a volcano, and to
  814. do that which other geologists have never done he would risk his
  815. life. I will preserve silence. I will keep the secret which mere
  816. chance has revealed to me. To discover it, would be to kill Professor
  817. Liedenbrock! Let him find it out himself if he can. I will never have
  818. it laid to my door that I led him to his destruction."
  819. Having formed this resolution, I folded my arms and waited. But I had
  820. not reckoned upon one little incident which turned up a few hours
  821. after.
  822. When our good Martha wanted to go to Market, she found the door
  823. locked. The big key was gone. Who could have taken it out? Assuredly,
  824. it was my uncle, when he returned the night before from his hurried
  825. walk.
  826. Was this done on purpose? Or was it a mistake? Did he want to reduce
  827. us by famine? This seemed like going rather too far! What! should
  828. Martha and I be victims of a position of things in which we had not
  829. the smallest interest? It was a fact that a few years before this,
  830. whilst my uncle was working at his great classification of minerals,
  831. he was forty-eight hours without eating, and all his household were
  832. obliged to share in this scientific fast. As for me, what I remember
  833. is, that I got severe cramps in my stomach, which hardly suited the
  834. constitution of a hungry, growing lad.
  835. Now it appeared to me as if breakfast was going to be wanting, just
  836. as supper had been the night before. Yet I resolved to be a hero, and
  837. not to be conquered by the pangs of hunger. Martha took it very
  838. seriously, and, poor woman, was very much distressed. As for me, the
  839. impossibility of leaving the house distressed me a good deal more,
  840. and for a very good reason. A caged lover's feelings may easily be
  841. imagined.
  842. My uncle went on working, his imagination went off rambling into the
  843. ideal world of combinations; he was far away from earth, and really
  844. far away from earthly wants.
  845. About noon hunger began to stimulate me severely. Martha had, without
  846. thinking any harm, cleared out the larder the night before, so that
  847. now there was nothing left in the house. Still I held out; I made it
  848. a point of honour.
  849. Two o'clock struck. This was becoming ridiculous; worse than that,
  850. unbearable. I began to say to myself that I was exaggerating the
  851. importance of the document; that my uncle would surely not believe in
  852. it, that he would set it down as a mere puzzle; that if it came to
  853. the worst, we should lay violent hands on him and keep him at home if
  854. he thought on venturing on the expedition; that, after all, he might
  855. himself discover the key of the cipher, and that then I should be
  856. clear at the mere expense of my involuntary abstinence.
  857. These reasons seemed excellent to me, though on the night before I
  858. should have rejected them with indignation; I even went so far as to
  859. condemn myself for my absurdity in having waited so long, and I
  860. finally resolved to let it all out.
  861. I was therefore meditating a proper introduction to the matter, so as
  862. not to seem too abrupt, when the Professor jumped up, clapped on his
  863. hat, and prepared to go out.
  864. Surely he was not going out, to shut us in again! no, never!
  865. "Uncle!" I cried.
  866. He seemed not to hear me.
  867. "Uncle Liedenbrock!" I cried, lifting up my voice.
  868. "Ay," he answered like a man suddenly waking.
  869. "Uncle, that key!"
  870. "What key? The door key?"
  871. "No, no!" I cried. "The key of the document."
  872. The Professor stared at me over his spectacles; no doubt he saw
  873. something unusual in the expression of my countenance; for he laid
  874. hold of my arm, and speechlessly questioned me with his eyes. Yes,
  875. never was a question more forcibly put.
  876. I nodded my head up and down.
  877. He shook his pityingly, as if he was dealing with a lunatic. I gave a
  878. more affirmative gesture.
  879. His eyes glistened and sparkled with live fire, his hand was shaken
  880. threateningly.
  881. This mute conversation at such a momentous crisis would have riveted
  882. the attention of the most indifferent. And the fact really was that I
  883. dared not speak now, so intense was the excitement for fear lest my
  884. uncle should smother me in his first joyful embraces. But he became
  885. so urgent that I was at last compelled to answer.
  886. "Yes, that key, chance--"
  887. "What is that you are saying?" he shouted with indescribable emotion.
  888. "There, read that!" I said, presenting a sheet of paper on which I
  889. had written.
  890. "But there is nothing in this," he answered, crumpling up the paper.
  891. "No, nothing until you proceed to read from the end to the beginning."
  892. I had not finished my sentence when the Professor broke out into a
  893. cry, nay, a roar. A new revelation burst in upon him. He was
  894. transformed!
  895. "Aha, clever Saknussemm!" he cried. "You had first written out your
  896. sentence the wrong way."
  897. And darting upon the paper, with eyes bedimmed, and voice choked with
  898. emotion, he read the whole document from the last letter to the first.
  899. It was conceived in the following terms:
  900. In Sneffels Joculis craterem quem delibat
  901. Umbra Scartaris Julii intra calendas descende,
  902. Audax viator, et terrestre centrum attinges.
  903. Quod feci, Arne Saknussemm.[1]
  904. Which bad Latin may be translated thus:
  905. "Descend, bold traveller, into the crater of the jokul of Sneffels,
  906. which the shadow of Scartaris touches before the kalends of July, and
  907. you will attain the centre of the earth; which I have done, Arne
  908. Saknussemm."
  909. In reading this, my uncle gave a spring as if he had touched a Leyden
  910. jar. His audacity, his joy, and his convictions were magnificent to
  911. behold. He came and he went; he seized his head between both his
  912. hands; he pushed the chairs out of their places, he piled up his
  913. books; incredible as it may seem, he rattled his precious nodules of
  914. flints together; he sent a kick here, a thump there. At last his
  915. nerves calmed down, and like a man exhausted by too lavish an
  916. expenditure of vital power, he sank back exhausted into his armchair.
  917. "What o'clock is it?" he asked after a few moments of silence.
  918. "Three o'clock," I replied.
  919. "Is it really? The dinner-hour is past, and I did not know it. I am
  920. half dead with hunger. Come on, and after dinner--"
  921. [1] In the cipher, _audax_ is written _avdas,_ and _quod_ and _quem,_
  922. _hod_ and _ken_. (Tr.)
  923. "Well?"
  924. "After dinner, pack up my trunk."
  925. "What?" I cried.
  926. "And yours!" replied the indefatigable Professor, entering the
  927. dining-room.
  928. CHAPTER VI.
  929. EXCITING DISCUSSIONS ABOUT AN UNPARALLELED ENTERPRISE
  930. At these words a cold shiver ran through me. Yet I controlled myself;
  931. I even resolved to put a good face upon it. Scientific arguments
  932. alone could have any weight with Professor Liedenbrock. Now there
  933. were good ones against the practicability of such a journey.
  934. Penetrate to the centre of the earth! What nonsense! But I kept my
  935. dialectic battery in reserve for a suitable opportunity, and I
  936. interested myself in the prospect of my dinner, which was not yet
  937. forthcoming.
  938. It is no use to tell of the rage and imprecations of my uncle before
  939. the empty table. Explanations were given, Martha was set at liberty,
  940. ran off to the market, and did her part so well that in an hour
  941. afterwards my hunger was appeased, and I was able to return to the
  942. contemplation of the gravity of the situation.
  943. During all dinner time my uncle was almost merry; he indulged in some
  944. of those learned jokes which never do anybody any harm. Dessert over,
  945. he beckoned me into his study.
  946. I obeyed; he sat at one end of his table, I at the other.
  947. "Axel," said he very mildly; "you are a very ingenious young man, you
  948. have done me a splendid service, at a moment when, wearied out with
  949. the struggle, I was going to abandon the contest. Where should I have
  950. lost myself? None can tell. Never, my lad, shall I forget it; and you
  951. shall have your share in the glory to which your discovery will lead."
  952. "Oh, come!" thought I, "he is in a good way. Now is the time for
  953. discussing that same glory."
  954. "Before all things," my uncle resumed, "I enjoin you to preserve the
  955. most inviolable secrecy: you understand? There are not a few in the
  956. scientific world who envy my success, and many would be ready to
  957. undertake this enterprise, to whom our return should be the first
  958. news of it."
  959. "Do you really think there are many people bold enough?" said I.
  960. "Certainly; who would hesitate to acquire such renown? If that
  961. document were divulged, a whole army of geologists would be ready to
  962. rush into the footsteps of Arne Saknussemm."
  963. "I don't feel so very sure of that, uncle," I replied; "for we have
  964. no proof of the authenticity of this document."
  965. "What! not of the book, inside which we have discovered it?"
  966. "Granted. I admit that Saknussemm may have written these lines. But
  967. does it follow that he has really accomplished such a journey? And
  968. may it not be that this old parchment is intended to mislead?"
  969. I almost regretted having uttered this last word, which dropped from
  970. me in an unguarded moment. The Professor bent his shaggy brows, and I
  971. feared I had seriously compromised my own safety. Happily no great
  972. harm came of it. A smile flitted across the lip of my severe
  973. companion, and he answered:
  974. "That is what we shall see."
  975. "Ah!" said I, rather put out. "But do let me exhaust all the possible
  976. objections against this document."
  977. "Speak, my boy, don't be afraid. You are quite at liberty to express
  978. your opinions. You are no longer my nephew only, but my colleague.
  979. Pray go on."
  980. "Well, in the first place, I wish to ask what are this Jokul, this
  981. Sneffels, and this Scartaris, names which I have never heard before?"
  982. "Nothing easier. I received not long ago a map from my friend,
  983. Augustus Petermann, at Liepzig. Nothing could be more apropos. Take
  984. down the third atlas in the second shelf in the large bookcase,
  985. series Z, plate 4."
  986. I rose, and with the help of such precise instructions could not fail
  987. to find the required atlas. My uncle opened it and said:
  988. "Here is one of the best maps of Iceland, that of Handersen, and I
  989. believe this will solve the worst of our difficulties."
  990. I bent over the map.
  991. "You see this volcanic island," said the Professor; "observe that all
  992. the volcanoes are called jokuls, a word which means glacier in
  993. Icelandic, and under the high latitude of Iceland nearly all the
  994. active volcanoes discharge through beds of ice. Hence this term of
  995. jokul is applied to all the eruptive mountains in Iceland."
  996. "Very good," said I; "but what of Sneffels?"
  997. I was hoping that this question would be unanswerable; but I was
  998. mistaken. My uncle replied:
  999. "Follow my finger along the west coast of Iceland. Do you see
  1000. Rejkiavik, the capital? You do. Well; ascend the innumerable fiords
  1001. that indent those sea-beaten shores, and stop at the sixty-fifth
  1002. degree of latitude. What do you see there?"
  1003. "I see a peninsula looking like a thigh bone with the knee bone at
  1004. the end of it."
  1005. "A very fair comparison, my lad. Now do you see anything upon that
  1006. knee bone?"
  1007. "Yes; a mountain rising out of the sea."
  1008. "Right. That is Sn�fell."
  1009. "That Sn�fell?"
  1010. "It is. It is a mountain five thousand feet high, one of the most
  1011. remarkable in the world, if its crater leads down to the centre of
  1012. the earth."
  1013. "But that is impossible," I said shrugging my shoulders, and
  1014. disgusted at such a ridiculous supposition.
  1015. "Impossible?" said the Professor severely; "and why, pray?"
  1016. "Because this crater is evidently filled with lava and burning rocks,
  1017. and therefore--"
  1018. "But suppose it is an extinct volcano?"
  1019. "Extinct?"
  1020. "Yes; the number of active volcanoes on the surface of the globe is
  1021. at the present time only about three hundred. But there is a very
  1022. much larger number of extinct ones. Now, Sn�fell is one of these.
  1023. Since historic times there has been but one eruption of this
  1024. mountain, that of 1219; from that time it has quieted down more and
  1025. more, and now it is no longer reckoned among active volcanoes."
  1026. To such positive statements I could make no reply. I therefore took
  1027. refuge in other dark passages of the document.
  1028. "What is the meaning of this word Scartaris, and what have the
  1029. kalends of July to do with it?"
  1030. My uncle took a few minutes to consider. For one short moment I felt
  1031. a ray of hope, speedily to be extinguished. For he soon answered thus:
  1032. "What is darkness to you is light to me. This proves the ingenious
  1033. care with which Saknussemm guarded and defined his discovery.
  1034. Sneffels, or Sn�fell, has several craters. It was therefore necessary
  1035. to point out which of these leads to the centre of the globe. What
  1036. did the Icelandic sage do? He observed that at the approach of the
  1037. kalends of July, that is to say in the last days of June, one of the
  1038. peaks, called Scartaris, flung its shadow down the mouth of that
  1039. particular crater, and he committed that fact to his document. Could
  1040. there possibly have been a more exact guide? As soon as we have
  1041. arrived at the summit of Sn�fell we shall have no hesitation as to
  1042. the proper road to take."
  1043. Decidedly, my uncle had answered every one of my objections. I saw
  1044. that his position on the old parchment was impregnable. I therefore
  1045. ceased to press him upon that part of the subject, and as above all
  1046. things he must be convinced, I passed on to scientific objections,
  1047. which in my opinion were far more serious.
  1048. "Well, then," I said, "I am forced to admit that Saknussemm's
  1049. sentence is clear, and leaves no room for doubt. I will even allow
  1050. that the document bears every mark and evidence of authenticity. That
  1051. learned philosopher did get to the bottom of Sneffels, he has seen
  1052. the shadow of Scartaris touch the edge of the crater before the
  1053. kalends of July; he may even have heard the legendary stories told in
  1054. his day about that crater reaching to the centre of the world; but as
  1055. for reaching it himself, as for performing the journey, and
  1056. returning, if he ever went, I say no--he never, never did that."
  1057. "Now for your reason?" said my uncle ironically.
  1058. "All the theories of science demonstrate such a feat to be
  1059. impracticable."
  1060. "The theories say that, do they?" replied the Professor in the tone
  1061. of a meek disciple. "Oh! unpleasant theories! How the theories will
  1062. hinder us, won't they?"
  1063. I saw that he was only laughing at me; but I went on all the same.
  1064. "Yes; it is perfectly well known that the internal temperature rises
  1065. one degree for every 70 feet in depth; now, admitting this proportion
  1066. to be constant, and the radius of the earth being fifteen hundred
  1067. leagues, there must be a temperature of 360,032 degrees at the centre
  1068. of the earth. Therefore, all the substances that compose the body of
  1069. this earth must exist there in a state of incandescent gas; for the
  1070. metals that most resist the action of heat, gold, and platinum, and
  1071. the hardest rocks, can never be either solid or liquid under such a
  1072. temperature. I have therefore good reason for asking if it is
  1073. possible to penetrate through such a medium."
  1074. "So, Axel, it is the heat that troubles you?"
  1075. "Of course it is. Were we to reach a depth of thirty miles we should
  1076. have arrived at the limit of the terrestrial crust, for there the
  1077. temperature will be more than 2372 degrees."
  1078. "Are you afraid of being put into a state of fusion?"
  1079. "I will leave you to decide that question," I answered rather
  1080. sullenly. "This is my decision," replied Professor Liedenbrock,
  1081. putting on one of his grandest airs. "Neither you nor anybody else
  1082. knows with any certainty what is going on in the interior of this
  1083. globe, since not the twelve thousandth part of its radius is known;
  1084. science is eminently perfectible; and every new theory is soon routed
  1085. by a newer. Was it not always believed until Fourier that the
  1086. temperature of the interplanetary spaces decreased perpetually? and
  1087. is it not known at the present time that the greatest cold of the
  1088. ethereal regions is never lower than 40 degrees below zero Fahr.? Why
  1089. should it not be the same with the internal heat? Why should it not,
  1090. at a certain depth, attain an impassable limit, instead of rising to
  1091. such a point as to fuse the most infusible metals?"
  1092. As my uncle was now taking his stand upon hypotheses, of course,
  1093. there was nothing to be said.
  1094. "Well, I will tell you that true savants, amongst them Poisson, have
  1095. demonstrated that if a heat of 360,000 degrees [1] existed in the
  1096. interior of the globe, the fiery gases arising from the fused matter
  1097. would acquire an elastic force which the crust of the earth would be
  1098. unable to resist, and that it would explode like the plates of a
  1099. bursting boiler."
  1100. "That is Poisson's opinion, my uncle, nothing more."
  1101. "Granted. But it is likewise the creed adopted by other distinguished
  1102. geologists, that the interior of the globe is neither gas nor water,
  1103. nor any of the heaviest minerals known, for in none of these cases
  1104. would the earth weigh what it does."
  1105. "Oh, with figures you may prove anything!"
  1106. "But is it the same with facts! Is it not known that the number of
  1107. volcanoes has diminished since the first days of creation? and if
  1108. there is central heat may we not thence conclude that it is in
  1109. process of diminution?"
  1110. "My good uncle, if you will enter into the legion of speculation, I
  1111. can discuss the matter no longer."
  1112. "But I have to tell you that the highest names have come to the
  1113. support of my views. Do you remember a visit paid to me by the
  1114. celebrated chemist, Humphry Davy, in 1825?"
  1115. "Not at all, for I was not born until nineteen years afterwards."
  1116. "Well, Humphry Davy did call upon me on his way through Hamburg. We
  1117. were long engaged in discussing, amongst other problems, the
  1118. hypothesis of the liquid structure of the terrestrial nucleus. We
  1119. were agreed that it could not be in a liquid state, for a reason
  1120. which science has never been able to confute."
  1121. [1] The degrees of temperature are given by Jules Verne according to
  1122. the centigrade system, for which we will in each case substitute the
  1123. Fahrenheit measurement. (Tr.)
  1124. "What is that reason?" I said, rather astonished.
  1125. "Because this liquid mass would be subject, like the ocean, to the
  1126. lunar attraction, and therefore twice every day there would be
  1127. internal tides, which, upheaving the terrestrial crust, would cause
  1128. periodical earthquakes!"
  1129. "Yet it is evident that the surface of the globe has been subject to
  1130. the action of fire," I replied, "and it is quite reasonable to
  1131. suppose that the external crust cooled down first, whilst the heat
  1132. took refuge down to the centre."
  1133. "Quite a mistake," my uncle answered. "The earth has been heated by
  1134. combustion on its surface, that is all. Its surface was composed of a
  1135. great number of metals, such as potassium and sodium, which have the
  1136. peculiar property of igniting at the mere contact with air and water;
  1137. these metals kindled when the atmospheric vapours fell in rain upon
  1138. the soil; and by and by, when the waters penetrated into the fissures
  1139. of the crust of the earth, they broke out into fresh combustion with
  1140. explosions and eruptions. Such was the cause of the numerous
  1141. volcanoes at the origin of the earth."
  1142. "Upon my word, this is a very clever hypothesis," I exclaimed, in
  1143. spite rather of myself.
  1144. "And which Humphry Davy demonstrated to me by a simple experiment. He
  1145. formed a small ball of the metals which I have named, and which was a
  1146. very fair representation of our globe; whenever he caused a fine dew
  1147. of rain to fall upon its surface, it heaved up into little
  1148. monticules, it became oxydized and formed miniature mountains; a
  1149. crater broke open at one of its summits; the eruption took place, and
  1150. communicated to the whole of the ball such a heat that it could not
  1151. be held in the hand."
  1152. In truth, I was beginning to be shaken by the Professor's arguments,
  1153. besides which he gave additional weight to them by his usual ardour
  1154. and fervent enthusiasm.
  1155. "You see, Axel," he added, "the condition of the terrestrial nucleus
  1156. has given rise to various hypotheses among geologists; there is no
  1157. proof at all for this internal heat; my opinion is that there is no
  1158. such thing, it cannot be; besides we shall see for ourselves, and,
  1159. like Arne Saknussemm, we shall know exactly what to hold as truth
  1160. concerning this grand question."
  1161. "Very well, we shall see," I replied, feeling myself carried off by
  1162. his contagious enthusiasm. "Yes, we shall see; that is, if it is
  1163. possible to see anything there."
  1164. "And why not? May we not depend upon electric phenomena to give us
  1165. light? May we not even expect light from the atmosphere, the pressure
  1166. of which may render it luminous as we approach the centre?"
  1167. "Yes, yes," said I; "that is possible, too."
  1168. "It is certain," exclaimed my uncle in a tone of triumph. "But
  1169. silence, do you hear me? silence upon the whole subject; and let no
  1170. one get before us in this design of discovering the centre of the
  1171. earth."
  1172. CHAPTER VII.
  1173. A WOMAN'S COURAGE
  1174. Thus ended this memorable seance. That conversation threw me into a
  1175. fever. I came out of my uncle's study as if I had been stunned, and
  1176. as if there was not air enough in all the streets of Hamburg to put
  1177. me right again. I therefore made for the banks of the Elbe, where the
  1178. steamer lands her passengers, which forms the communication between
  1179. the city and the Hamburg railway.
  1180. Was I convinced of the truth of what I had heard? Had I not bent
  1181. under the iron rule of the Professor Liedenbrock? Was I to believe
  1182. him in earnest in his intention to penetrate to the centre of this
  1183. massive globe? Had I been listening to the mad speculations of a
  1184. lunatic, or to the scientific conclusions of a lofty genius? Where
  1185. did truth stop? Where did error begin?
  1186. I was all adrift amongst a thousand contradictory hypotheses, but I
  1187. could not lay hold of one.
  1188. Yet I remembered that I had been convinced, although now my
  1189. enthusiasm was beginning to cool down; but I felt a desire to start
  1190. at once, and not to lose time and courage by calm reflection. I had
  1191. at that moment quite courage enough to strap my knapsack to my
  1192. shoulders and start.
  1193. But I must confess that in another hour this unnatural excitement
  1194. abated, my nerves became unstrung, and from the depths of the abysses
  1195. of this earth I ascended to its surface again.
  1196. "It is quite absurd!" I cried, "there is no sense about it. No
  1197. sensible young man should for a moment entertain such a proposal. The
  1198. whole thing is non-existent. I have had a bad night, I have been
  1199. dreaming of horrors."
  1200. But I had followed the banks of the Elbe and passed the town. After
  1201. passing the port too, I had reached the Altona road. I was led by a
  1202. presentiment, soon to be realised; for shortly I espied my little
  1203. Gr�uben bravely returning with her light step to Hamburg.
  1204. "Gr�uben!" I cried from afar off.
  1205. The young girl stopped, rather frightened perhaps to hear her name
  1206. called after her on the high road. Ten yards more, and I had joined
  1207. her.
  1208. "Axel!" she cried surprised. "What! have you come to meet me? Is this
  1209. why you are here, sir?"
  1210. But when she had looked upon me, Gr�uben could not fail to see the
  1211. uneasiness and distress of my mind.
  1212. "What is the matter?" she said, holding out her hand.
  1213. "What is the matter, Gr�uben?" I cried.
  1214. In a couple of minutes my pretty Virlandaise was fully informed of
  1215. the position of affairs. For a time she was silent. Did her heart
  1216. palpitate as mine did? I don't know about that, but I know that her
  1217. hand did not tremble in mine. We went on a hundred yards without
  1218. speaking.
  1219. At last she said, "Axel!"
  1220. "My dear Gr�uben."
  1221. "That will be a splendid journey!"
  1222. I gave a bound at these words.
  1223. "Yes, Axel, a journey worthy of the nephew of a savant; it is a good
  1224. thing for a man to be distinguished by some great enterprise."
  1225. "What, Gr�uben, won't you dissuade me from such an undertaking?"
  1226. "No, my dear Axel, and I would willingly go with you, but that a poor
  1227. girl would only be in your way."
  1228. "Is that quite true?"
  1229. "It is true."
  1230. Ah! women and young girls, how incomprehensible are your feminine
  1231. hearts! When you are not the timidest, you are the bravest of
  1232. creatures. Reason has nothing to do with your actions. What! did this
  1233. child encourage me in such an expedition! Would she not be afraid to
  1234. join it herself? And she was driving me to it, one whom she loved!
  1235. I was disconcerted, and, if I must tell the whole truth, I was
  1236. ashamed.
  1237. "Gr�uben, we will see whether you will say the same thing to-morrow."
  1238. "To-morrow, dear Axel, I will say what I say to-day."
  1239. Gr�uben and I, hand in hand, but in silence, pursued our way. The
  1240. emotions of that day were breaking my heart.
  1241. After all, I thought, the kalends of July are a long way off, and
  1242. between this and then many things may take place which will cure my
  1243. uncle of his desire to travel underground.
  1244. It was night when we arrived at the house in K�nigstrasse. I expected
  1245. to find all quiet there, my uncle in bed as was his custom, and
  1246. Martha giving her last touches with the feather brush.
  1247. But I had not taken into account the Professor's impatience. I found
  1248. him shouting--and working himself up amidst a crowd of porters and
  1249. messengers who were all depositing various loads in the passage. Our
  1250. old servant was at her wits' end.
  1251. "Come, Axel, come, you miserable wretch," my uncle cried from as far
  1252. off as he could see me. "Your boxes are not packed, and my papers are
  1253. not arranged; where's the key of my carpet bag? and what have you
  1254. done with my gaiters?"
  1255. I stood thunderstruck. My voice failed. Scarcely could my lips utter
  1256. the words:
  1257. "Are we really going?"
  1258. "Of course, you unhappy boy! Could I have dreamed that you would have
  1259. gone out for a walk instead of hurrying your preparations forward?"
  1260. "Are we to go?" I asked again, with sinking hopes.
  1261. "Yes; the day after to-morrow, early."
  1262. I could hear no more. I fled for refuge into my own little room.
  1263. All hope was now at an end. My uncle had been all the morning making
  1264. purchases of a part of the tools and apparatus required for this
  1265. desperate undertaking. The passage was encumbered with rope ladders,
  1266. knotted cords, torches, flasks, grappling irons, alpenstocks,
  1267. pickaxes, iron shod sticks, enough to load ten men.
  1268. I spent an awful night. Next morning I was called early. I had quite
  1269. decided I would not open the door. But how was I to resist the sweet
  1270. voice which was always music to my ears, saying, "My dear Axel?"
  1271. I came out of my room. I thought my pale countenance and my red and
  1272. sleepless eyes would work upon Gr�uben's sympathies and change her
  1273. mind.
  1274. "Ah! my dear Axel," she said. "I see you are better. A night's rest
  1275. has done you good."
  1276. "Done me good!" I exclaimed.
  1277. I rushed to the glass. Well, in fact I did look better than I had
  1278. expected. I could hardly believe my own eyes.
  1279. "Axel," she said, "I have had a long talk with my guardian. He is a
  1280. bold philosopher, a man of immense courage, and you must remember
  1281. that his blood flows in your veins. He has confided to me his plans,
  1282. his hopes, and why and how he hopes to attain his object. He will no
  1283. doubt succeed. My dear Axel, it is a grand thing to devote yourself
  1284. to science! What honour will fall upon Herr Liedenbrock, and so be
  1285. reflected upon his companion! When you return, Axel, you will be a
  1286. man, his equal, free to speak and to act independently, and free to
  1287. --"
  1288. The dear girl only finished this sentence by blushing. Her words
  1289. revived me. Yet I refused to believe we should start. I drew Gr�uben
  1290. into the Professor's study.
  1291. "Uncle, is it true that we are to go?"
  1292. "Why do you doubt?"
  1293. "Well, I don't doubt," I said, not to vex him; "but, I ask, what need
  1294. is there to hurry?"
  1295. "Time, time, flying with irreparable rapidity."
  1296. "But it is only the 16th May, and until the end of June--"
  1297. "What, you monument of ignorance! do you think you can get to Iceland
  1298. in a couple of days? If you had not deserted me like a fool I should
  1299. have taken you to the Copenhagen office, to Liffender & Co., and you
  1300. would have learned then that there is only one trip every month from
  1301. Copenhagen to Rejkiavik, on the 22nd."
  1302. "Well?"
  1303. "Well, if we waited for the 22nd June we should be too late to see
  1304. the shadow of Scartaris touch the crater of Sneffels. Therefore we
  1305. must get to Copenhagen as fast as we can to secure our passage. Go
  1306. and pack up."
  1307. There was no reply to this. I went up to my room. Gr�uben followed
  1308. me. She undertook to pack up all things necessary for my voyage. She
  1309. was no more moved than if I had been starting for a little trip to
  1310. L�beck or Heligoland. Her little hands moved without haste. She
  1311. talked quietly. She supplied me with sensible reasons for our
  1312. expedition. She delighted me, and yet I was angry with her. Now and
  1313. then I felt I ought to break out into a passion, but she took no
  1314. notice and went on her way as methodically as ever.
  1315. Finally the last strap was buckled; I came downstairs. All that day
  1316. the philosophical instrument makers and the electricians kept coming
  1317. and going. Martha was distracted.
  1318. "Is master mad?" she asked.
  1319. I nodded my head.
  1320. "And is he going to take you with him?"
  1321. I nodded again.
  1322. "Where to?"
  1323. I pointed with my finger downward.
  1324. "Down into the cellar?" cried the old servant.
  1325. "No," I said. "Lower down than that."
  1326. Night came. But I knew nothing about the lapse of time.
  1327. "To-morrow morning at six precisely," my uncle decreed "we start."
  1328. At ten o'clock I fell upon my bed, a dead lump of inert matter. All
  1329. through the night terror had hold of me. I spent it dreaming of
  1330. abysses. I was a prey to delirium. I felt myself grasped by the
  1331. Professor's sinewy hand, dragged along, hurled down, shattered into
  1332. little bits. I dropped down unfathomable precipices with the
  1333. accelerating velocity of bodies falling through space. My life had
  1334. become an endless fall. I awoke at five with shattered nerves,
  1335. trembling and weary. I came downstairs. My uncle was at table,
  1336. devouring his breakfast. I stared at him with horror and disgust. But
  1337. dear Gr�uben was there; so I said nothing, and could eat nothing.
  1338. At half-past five there was a rattle of wheels outside. A large
  1339. carriage was there to take us to the Altona railway station. It was
  1340. soon piled up with my uncle's multifarious preparations.
  1341. "Where's your box?" he cried.
  1342. "It is ready," I replied, with faltering voice.
  1343. "Then make haste down, or we shall lose the train."
  1344. It was now manifestly impossible to maintain the struggle against
  1345. destiny. I went up again to my room, and rolling my portmanteaus
  1346. downstairs I darted after him.
  1347. At that moment my uncle was solemnly investing Gr�uben with the reins
  1348. of government. My pretty Virlandaise was as calm and collected as was
  1349. her wont. She kissed her guardian; but could not restrain a tear in
  1350. touching my cheek with her gentle lips.
  1351. "Gr�uben!" I murmured.
  1352. "Go, my dear Axel, go! I am now your betrothed; and when you come
  1353. back I will be your wife."
  1354. I pressed her in my arms and took my place in the carriage. Martha
  1355. and the young girl, standing at the door, waved their last farewell.
  1356. Then the horses, roused by the driver's whistling, darted off at a
  1357. gallop on the road to Altona.
  1358. CHAPTER VIII.
  1359. SERIOUS PREPARATIONS FOR VERTICAL DESCENT
  1360. Altona, which is but a suburb of Hamburg, is the terminus of the Kiel
  1361. railway, which was to carry us to the Belts. In twenty minutes we
  1362. were in Holstein.
  1363. At half-past six the carriage stopped at the station; my uncle's
  1364. numerous packages, his voluminous _impedimenta,_ were unloaded,
  1365. removed, labelled, weighed, put into the luggage vans, and at seven
  1366. we were seated face to face in our compartment. The whistle sounded,
  1367. the engine started, we were off.
  1368. Was I resigned? No, not yet. Yet the cool morning air and the scenes
  1369. on the road, rapidly changed by the swiftness of the train, drew me
  1370. away somewhat from my sad reflections.
  1371. As for the Professor's reflections, they went far in advance of the
  1372. swiftest express. We were alone in the carriage, but we sat in
  1373. silence. My uncle examined all his pockets and his travelling bag
  1374. with the minutest care. I saw that he had not forgotten the smallest
  1375. matter of detail.
  1376. Amongst other documents, a sheet of paper, carefully folded, bore the
  1377. heading of the Danish consulate with the signature of W.
  1378. Christiensen, consul at Hamburg and the Professor's friend. With this
  1379. we possessed the proper introductions to the Governor of Iceland.
  1380. I also observed the famous document most carefully laid up in a
  1381. secret pocket in his portfolio. I bestowed a malediction upon it, and
  1382. then proceeded to examine the country.
  1383. It was a very long succession of uninteresting loamy and fertile
  1384. flats, a very easy country for the construction of railways, and
  1385. propitious for the laying-down of these direct level lines so dear to
  1386. railway companies.
  1387. I had no time to get tired of the monotony; for in three hours we
  1388. stopped at Kiel, close to the sea.
  1389. The luggage being labelled for Copenhagen, we had no occasion to look
  1390. after it. Yet the Professor watched every article with jealous
  1391. vigilance, until all were safe on board. There they disappeared in
  1392. the hold.
  1393. My uncle, notwithstanding his hurry, had so well calculated the
  1394. relations between the train and the steamer that we had a whole day
  1395. to spare. The steamer _Ellenora,_ did not start until night. Thence
  1396. sprang a feverish state of excitement in which the impatient
  1397. irascible traveller devoted to perdition the railway directors and
  1398. the steamboat companies and the governments which allowed such
  1399. intolerable slowness. I was obliged to act chorus to him when he
  1400. attacked the captain of the _Ellenora_ upon this subject. The captain
  1401. disposed of us summarily.
  1402. At Kiel, as elsewhere, we must do something to while away the time.
  1403. What with walking on the verdant shores of the bay within which
  1404. nestles the little town, exploring the thick woods which make it look
  1405. like a nest embowered amongst thick foliage, admiring the villas,
  1406. each provided with a little bathing house, and moving about and
  1407. grumbling, at last ten o'clock came.
  1408. The heavy coils of smoke from the _Ellenora's_ funnel unrolled in the
  1409. sky, the bridge shook with the quivering of the struggling steam; we
  1410. were on board, and owners for the time of two berths, one over the
  1411. other, in the only saloon cabin on board.
  1412. At a quarter past the moorings were loosed and the throbbing steamer
  1413. pursued her way over the dark waters of the Great Belt.
  1414. The night was dark; there was a sharp breeze and a rough sea, a few
  1415. lights appeared on shore through the thick darkness; later on, I
  1416. cannot tell when, a dazzling light from some lighthouse threw a
  1417. bright stream of fire along the waves; and this is all I can remember
  1418. of this first portion of our sail.
  1419. At seven in the morning we landed at Korsor, a small town on the west
  1420. coast of Zealand. There we were transferred from the boat to another
  1421. line of railway, which took us by just as flat a country as the plain
  1422. of Holstein.
  1423. Three hours' travelling brought us to the capital of Denmark. My
  1424. uncle had not shut his eyes all night. In his impatience I believe he
  1425. was trying to accelerate the train with his feet.
  1426. At last he discerned a stretch of sea.
  1427. "The Sound!" he cried.
  1428. At our left was a huge building that looked like a hospital.
  1429. "That's a lunatic asylum," said one of or travelling companions.
  1430. Very good! thought I, just the place we want to end our days in; and
  1431. great as it is, that asylum is not big enough to contain all
  1432. Professor Liedenbrock's madness!
  1433. At ten in the morning, at last, we set our feet in Copenhagen; the
  1434. luggage was put upon a carriage and taken with ourselves to the
  1435. Phoenix Hotel in Breda Gate. This took half an hour, for the station
  1436. is out of the town. Then my uncle, after a hasty toilet, dragged me
  1437. after him. The porter at the hotel could speak German and English;
  1438. but the Professor, as a polyglot, questioned him in good Danish, and
  1439. it was in the same language that that personage directed him to the
  1440. Museum of Northern Antiquities.
  1441. The curator of this curious establishment, in which wonders are
  1442. gathered together out of which the ancient history of the country
  1443. might be reconstructed by means of its stone weapons, its cups and
  1444. its jewels, was a learned savant, the friend of the Danish consul at
  1445. Hamburg, Professor Thomsen.
  1446. My uncle had a cordial letter of introduction to him. As a general
  1447. rule one savant greets another with coolness. But here the case was
  1448. different. M. Thomsen, like a good friend, gave the Professor
  1449. Liedenbrock a cordial greeting, and he even vouchsafed the same
  1450. kindness to his nephew. It is hardly necessary to say the secret was
  1451. sacredly kept from the excellent curator; we were simply
  1452. disinterested travellers visiting Iceland out of harmless curiosity.
  1453. M. Thomsen placed his services at our disposal, and we visited the
  1454. quays with the object of finding out the next vessel to sail.
  1455. I was yet in hopes that there would be no means of getting to
  1456. Iceland. But there was no such luck. A small Danish schooner, the
  1457. _Valkyria_, was to set sail for Rejkiavik on the 2nd of June. The
  1458. captain, M. Bjarne, was on board. His intending passenger was so
  1459. joyful that he almost squeezed his hands till they ached. That good
  1460. man was rather surprised at his energy. To him it seemed a very
  1461. simple thing to go to Iceland, as that was his business; but to my
  1462. uncle it was sublime. The worthy captain took advantage of his
  1463. enthusiasm to charge double fares; but we did not trouble ourselves
  1464. about mere trifles. .
  1465. "You must be on board on Tuesday, at seven in the morning," said
  1466. Captain Bjarne, after having pocketed more dollars than were his due.
  1467. Then we thanked M. Thomsen for his kindness, "and we returned to the
  1468. Phoenix Hotel.
  1469. "It's all right, it's all right," my uncle repeated. "How fortunate
  1470. we are to have found this boat ready for sailing. Now let us have
  1471. some breakfast and go about the town."
  1472. We went first to Kongens-nye-Torw, an irregular square in which are
  1473. two innocent-looking guns, which need not alarm any one. Close by, at
  1474. No. 5, there was a French "restaurant," kept by a cook of the name of
  1475. Vincent, where we had an ample breakfast for four marks each (2_s_.
  1476. 4_d_.).
  1477. Then I took a childish pleasure in exploring the city; my uncle let
  1478. me take him with me, but he took notice of nothing, neither the
  1479. insignificant king's palace, nor the pretty seventeenth century
  1480. bridge, which spans the canal before the museum, nor that immense
  1481. cenotaph of Thorwaldsen's, adorned with horrible mural painting, and
  1482. containing within it a collection of the sculptor's works, nor in a
  1483. fine park the toylike chateau of Rosenberg, nor the beautiful
  1484. renaissance edifice of the Exchange, nor its spire composed of the
  1485. twisted tails of four bronze dragons, nor the great windmill on the
  1486. ramparts, whose huge arms dilated in the sea breeze like the sails of
  1487. a ship.
  1488. What delicious walks we should have had together, my pretty
  1489. Virlandaise and I, along the harbour where the two-deckers and the
  1490. frigate slept peaceably by the red roofing of the warehouse, by the
  1491. green banks of the strait, through the deep shades of the trees
  1492. amongst which the fort is half concealed, where the guns are
  1493. thrusting out their black throats between branches of alder and
  1494. willow.
  1495. But, alas! Gr�uben was far away; and I never hoped to see her again.
  1496. But if my uncle felt no attraction towards these romantic scenes he
  1497. was very much struck with the aspect of a certain church spire
  1498. situated in the island of Amak, which forms the south-west quarter of
  1499. Copenhagen.
  1500. I was ordered to direct my feet that way; I embarked on a small
  1501. steamer which plies on the canals, and in a few minutes she touched
  1502. the quay of the dockyard.
  1503. After crossing a few narrow streets where some convicts, in trousers
  1504. half yellow and half grey, were at work under the orders of the
  1505. gangers, we arrived at the Vor Frelsers Kirk. There was nothing
  1506. remarkable about the church; but there was a reason why its tall
  1507. spire had attracted the Professor's attention. Starting from the top
  1508. of the tower, an external staircase wound around the spire, the
  1509. spirals circling up into the sky.
  1510. "Let us get to the top," said my uncle.
  1511. "I shall be dizzy," I said.
  1512. "The more reason why we should go up; we must get used to it."
  1513. "But--"
  1514. "Come, I tell you; don't waste our time."
  1515. I had to obey. A keeper who lived at the other end of the street
  1516. handed us the key, and the ascent began.
  1517. My uncle went ahead with a light step. I followed him not without
  1518. alarm, for my head was very apt to feel dizzy; I possessed neither
  1519. the equilibrium of an eagle nor his fearless nature.
  1520. As long as we were protected on the inside of the winding staircase
  1521. up the tower, all was well enough; but after toiling up a hundred and
  1522. fifty steps the fresh air came to salute my face, and we were on the
  1523. leads of the tower. There the aerial staircase began its gyrations,
  1524. only guarded by a thin iron rail, and the narrowing steps seemed to
  1525. ascend into infinite space!
  1526. "Never shall I be able to do it," I said.
  1527. "Don't be a coward; come up, sir"; said my uncle with the coldest
  1528. cruelty.
  1529. I had to follow, clutching at every step. The keen air made me giddy;
  1530. I felt the spire rocking with every gust of wind; my knees began to
  1531. fail; soon I was crawling on my knees, then creeping on my stomach; I
  1532. closed my eyes; I seemed to be lost in space.
  1533. At last I reached the apex, with the assistance of my uncle dragging
  1534. me up by the collar.
  1535. "Look down!" he cried. "Look down well! You must take a lesson
  1536. in abysses."
  1537. I opened my eyes. I saw houses squashed flat as if they had all
  1538. fallen down from the skies; a smoke fog seemed to drown them. Over my
  1539. head ragged clouds were drifting past, and by an optical inversion
  1540. they seemed stationary, while the steeple, the ball and I were all
  1541. spinning along with fantastic speed. Far away on one side was the
  1542. green country, on the other the sea sparkled, bathed in sunlight. The
  1543. Sound stretched away to Elsinore, dotted with a few white sails, like
  1544. sea-gulls' wings; and in the misty east and away to the north-east
  1545. lay outstretched the faintly-shadowed shores of Sweden. All this
  1546. immensity of space whirled and wavered, fluctuating beneath my eyes.
  1547. But I was compelled to rise, to stand up, to look. My first lesson in
  1548. dizziness lasted an hour. When I got permission to come down and feel
  1549. the solid street pavements I was afflicted with severe lumbago.
  1550. "To-morrow we will do it again," said the Professor.
  1551. And it was so; for five days in succession, I was obliged to undergo
  1552. this anti-vertiginous exercise; and whether I would or not, I made
  1553. some improvement in the art of "lofty contemplations."
  1554. CHAPTER IX.
  1555. ICELAND! BUT WHAT NEXT?
  1556. The day for our departure arrived. The day before it our kind friend
  1557. M. Thomsen brought us letters of introduction to Count Trampe, the
  1558. Governor of Iceland, M. Picturssen, the bishop's suffragan, and M.
  1559. Finsen, mayor of Rejkiavik. My uncle expressed his gratitude by
  1560. tremendous compressions of both his hands.
  1561. On the 2nd, at six in the evening, all our precious baggage being
  1562. safely on board the _Valkyria,_ the captain took us into a very
  1563. narrow cabin.
  1564. "Is the wind favourable?" my uncle asked.
  1565. "Excellent," replied Captain Bjarne; "a sou'-easter. We shall pass
  1566. down the Sound full speed, with all sails set."
  1567. In a few minutes the schooner, under her mizen, brigantine, topsail,
  1568. and topgallant sail, loosed from her moorings and made full sail
  1569. through the straits. In an hour the capital of Denmark seemed to sink
  1570. below the distant waves, and the _Valkyria_ was skirting the coast by
  1571. Elsinore. In my nervous frame of mind I expected to see the ghost of
  1572. Hamlet wandering on the legendary castle terrace.
  1573. "Sublime madman!" I said, "no doubt you would approve of our
  1574. expedition. Perhaps you would keep us company to the centre of the
  1575. globe, to find the solution of your eternal doubts."
  1576. But there was no ghostly shape upon the ancient walls. Indeed, the
  1577. castle is much younger than the heroic prince of Denmark. It now
  1578. answers the purpose of a sumptuous lodge for the doorkeeper of the
  1579. straits of the Sound, before which every year there pass fifteen
  1580. thousand ships of all nations.
  1581. The castle of Kronsberg soon disappeared in the mist, as well as the
  1582. tower of Helsingborg, built on the Swedish coast, and the schooner
  1583. passed lightly on her way urged by the breezes of the Cattegat.
  1584. The _Valkyria_ was a splendid sailer, but on a sailing vessel you can
  1585. place no dependence. She was taking to Rejkiavik coal, household
  1586. goods, earthenware, woollen clothing, and a cargo of wheat. The crew
  1587. consisted of five men, all Danes.
  1588. "How long will the passage take?" my uncle asked.
  1589. "Ten days," the captain replied, "if we don't meet a nor'-wester in
  1590. passing the Faroes."
  1591. "But are you not subject to considerable delays?"
  1592. "No, M. Liedenbrock, don't be uneasy, we shall get there in very good
  1593. time."
  1594. At evening the schooner doubled the Skaw at the northern point of
  1595. Denmark, in the night passed the Skager Rack, skirted Norway by Cape
  1596. Lindness, and entered the North Sea.
  1597. In two days more we sighted the coast of Scotland near Peterhead, and
  1598. the _Valkyria_ turned her lead towards the Faroe Islands, passing
  1599. between the Orkneys and Shetlands.
  1600. Soon the schooner encountered the great Atlantic swell; she had to
  1601. tack against the north wind, and reached the Faroes only with some
  1602. difficulty. On the 8th the captain made out Myganness, the
  1603. southernmost of these islands, and from that moment took a straight
  1604. course for Cape Portland, the most southerly point of Iceland.
  1605. The passage was marked by nothing unusual. I bore the troubles of the
  1606. sea pretty well; my uncle, to his own intense disgust, and his
  1607. greater shame, was ill all through the voyage.
  1608. He therefore was unable to converse with the captain about Sn�fell,
  1609. the way to get to it, the facilities for transport, he was obliged to
  1610. put off these inquiries until his arrival, and spent all his time at
  1611. full length in his cabin, of which the timbers creaked and shook with
  1612. every pitch she took. It must be confessed he was not undeserving of
  1613. his punishment.
  1614. On the 11th we reached Cape Portland. The clear open weather gave us
  1615. a good view of Myrdals jokul, which overhangs it. The cape is merely
  1616. a low hill with steep sides, standing lonely by the beach.
  1617. The _Valkyria_ kept at some distance from the coast, taking a
  1618. westerly course amidst great shoals of whales and sharks. Soon we
  1619. came in sight of an enormous perforated rock, through which the sea
  1620. dashed furiously. The Westman islets seemed to rise out of the ocean
  1621. like a group of rocks in a liquid plain. From that time the schooner
  1622. took a wide berth and swept at a great distance round Cape
  1623. Rejkianess, which forms the western point of Iceland.
  1624. The rough sea prevented my uncle from coming on deck to admire these
  1625. shattered and surf-beaten coasts.
  1626. Forty-eight hours after, coming out of a storm which forced the
  1627. schooner to scud under bare poles, we sighted east of us the beacon
  1628. on Cape Skagen, where dangerous rocks extend far away seaward. An
  1629. Icelandic pilot came on board, and in three hours the _Valkyria_
  1630. dropped her anchor before Rejkiavik, in Faxa Bay.
  1631. The Professor at last emerged from his cabin, rather pale and
  1632. wretched-looking, but still full of enthusiasm, and with ardent
  1633. satisfaction shining in his eyes.
  1634. The population of the town, wonderfully interested in the arrival of
  1635. a vessel from which every one expected something, formed in groups
  1636. upon the quay.
  1637. My uncle left in haste his floating prison, or rather hospital. But
  1638. before quitting the deck of the schooner he dragged me forward, and
  1639. pointing with outstretched finger north of the bay at a distant
  1640. mountain terminating in a double peak, a pair of cones covered with
  1641. perpetual snow, he cried:
  1642. "Sn�fell! Sn�fell!"
  1643. Then recommending me, by an impressive gesture, to keep silence, he
  1644. went into the boat which awaited him. I followed, and presently we
  1645. were treading the soil of Iceland.
  1646. The first man we saw was a good-looking fellow enough, in a general's
  1647. uniform. Yet he was not a general but a magistrate, the Governor of
  1648. the island, M. le Baron Trampe himself. The Professor was soon aware
  1649. of the presence he was in. He delivered him his letters from
  1650. Copenhagen, and then followed a short conversation in the Danish
  1651. language, the purport of which I was quite ignorant of, and for a
  1652. very good reason. But the result of this first conversation was, that
  1653. Baron Trampe placed himself entirely at the service of Professor
  1654. Liedenbrock.
  1655. My uncle was just as courteously received by the mayor, M. Finsen,
  1656. whose appearance was as military, and disposition and office as
  1657. pacific, as the Governor's.
  1658. As for the bishop's suffragan, M. Picturssen, he was at that moment
  1659. engaged on an episcopal visitation in the north. For the time we must
  1660. be resigned to wait for the honour of being presented to him. But M.
  1661. Fridrikssen, professor of natural sciences at the school of
  1662. Rejkiavik, was a delightful man, and his friendship became very
  1663. precious to me. This modest philosopher spoke only Danish and Latin.
  1664. He came to proffer me his good offices in the language of Horace, and
  1665. I felt that we were made to understand each other. In fact he was the
  1666. only person in Iceland with whom I could converse at all.
  1667. This good-natured gentleman made over to us two of the three rooms
  1668. which his house contained, and we were soon installed in it with all
  1669. our luggage, the abundance of which rather astonished the good people
  1670. of Rejkiavik.
  1671. "Well, Axel," said my uncle, "we are getting on, and now the worst is
  1672. over."
  1673. "The worst!" I said, astonished.
  1674. "To be sure, now we have nothing to do but go down."
  1675. "Oh, if that is all, you are quite right; but after all, when we have
  1676. gone down, we shall have to get up again, I suppose?"
  1677. "Oh I don't trouble myself about that. Come, there's no time to lose;
  1678. I am going to the library. Perhaps there is some manuscript of
  1679. Saknussemm's there, and I should be glad to consult it."
  1680. "Well, while you are there I will go into the town. Won't you?"
  1681. "Oh, that is very uninteresting to me. It is not what is upon this
  1682. island, but what is underneath, that interests me."
  1683. I went out, and wandered wherever chance took me.
  1684. It would not be easy to lose your way in Rejkiavik. I was therefore
  1685. under no necessity to inquire the road, which exposes one to mistakes
  1686. when the only medium of intercourse is gesture.
  1687. The town extends along a low and marshy level, between two hills. An
  1688. immense bed of lava bounds it on one side, and falls gently towards
  1689. the sea. On the other extends the vast bay of Faxa, shut in at the
  1690. north by the enormous glacier of the Sn�fell, and of which the
  1691. _Valkyria_ was for the time the only occupant. Usually the English
  1692. and French conservators of fisheries moor in this bay, but just then
  1693. they were cruising about the western coasts of the island.
  1694. The longest of the only two streets that Rejkiavik possesses was
  1695. parallel with the beach. Here live the merchants and traders, in
  1696. wooden cabins made of red planks set horizontally; the other street,
  1697. running west, ends at the little lake between the house of the bishop
  1698. and other non-commercial people.
  1699. I had soon explored these melancholy ways; here and there I got a
  1700. glimpse of faded turf, looking like a worn-out bit of carpet, or some
  1701. appearance of a kitchen garden, the sparse vegetables of which
  1702. (potatoes, cabbages, and lettuces), would have figured appropriately
  1703. upon a Lilliputian table. A few sickly wallflowers were trying to
  1704. enjoy the air and sunshine.
  1705. About the middle of the tin-commercial street I found the public
  1706. cemetery, inclosed with a mud wall, and where there seemed plenty of
  1707. room.
  1708. Then a few steps brought me to the Governor's house, a but compared
  1709. with the town hall of Hamburg, a palace in comparison with the cabins
  1710. of the Icelandic population.
  1711. Between the little lake and the town the church is built in the
  1712. Protestant style, of calcined stones extracted out of the volcanoes
  1713. by their own labour and at their own expense; in high westerly winds
  1714. it was manifest that the red tiles of the roof would be scattered in
  1715. the air, to the great danger of the faithful worshippers.
  1716. On a neighbouring hill I perceived the national school, where, as I
  1717. was informed later by our host, were taught Hebrew, English, French,
  1718. and Danish, four languages of which, with shame I confess it, I don't
  1719. know a single word; after an examination I should have had to stand
  1720. last of the forty scholars educated at this little college, and I
  1721. should have been held unworthy to sleep along with them in one of
  1722. those little double closets, where more delicate youths would have
  1723. died of suffocation the very first night.
  1724. In three hours I had seen not only the town but its environs. The
  1725. general aspect was wonderfully dull. No trees, and scarcely any
  1726. vegetation. Everywhere bare rocks, signs of volcanic action. The
  1727. Icelandic huts are made of earth and turf, and the walls slope
  1728. inward; they rather resemble roofs placed on the ground. But then
  1729. these roofs are meadows of comparative fertility. Thanks to the
  1730. internal heat, the grass grows on them to some degree of perfection.
  1731. It is carefully mown in the hay season; if it were not, the horses
  1732. would come to pasture on these green abodes.
  1733. In my excursion I met but few people. On returning to the main street
  1734. I found the greater part of the population busied in drying, salting,
  1735. and putting on board codfish, their chief export. The men looked like
  1736. robust but heavy, blond Germans with pensive eyes, conscious of being
  1737. far removed from their fellow creatures, poor exiles relegated to
  1738. this land of ice, poor creatures who should have been Esquimaux,
  1739. since nature had condemned them to live only just outside the arctic
  1740. circle! In vain did I try to detect a smile upon their lips;
  1741. sometimes by a spasmodic and involuntary contraction of the muscles
  1742. they seemed to laugh, but they never smiled.
  1743. Their costume consisted of a coarse jacket of black woollen cloth
  1744. called in Scandinavian lands a 'vadmel,' a hat with a very broad
  1745. brim, trousers with a narrow edge of red, and a bit of leather rolled
  1746. round the foot for shoes.
  1747. The women looked as sad and as resigned as the men; their faces were
  1748. agreeable but expressionless, and they wore gowns and petticoats of
  1749. dark 'vadmel'; as maidens, they wore over their braided hair a little
  1750. knitted brown cap; when married, they put around their heads a
  1751. coloured handkerchief, crowned with a peak of white linen.
  1752. After a good walk I returned to M. Fridrikssen's house, where I found
  1753. my uncle already in his host's company.
  1754. CHAPTER X.
  1755. INTERESTING CONVERSATIONS WITH ICELANDIC SAVANTS
  1756. Dinner was ready. Professor Liedenbrock devoured his portion
  1757. voraciously, for his compulsory fast on board had converted his
  1758. stomach into a vast unfathomable gulf. There was nothing remarkable
  1759. in the meal itself; but the hospitality of our host, more Danish than
  1760. Icelandic, reminded me of the heroes of old. It was evident that we
  1761. were more at home than he was himself.
  1762. The conversation was carried on in the vernacular tongue, which my
  1763. uncle mixed with German and M. Fridrikssen with Latin for my benefit.
  1764. It turned upon scientific questions as befits philosophers; but
  1765. Professor Liedenbrock was excessively reserved, and at every sentence
  1766. spoke to me with his eyes, enjoining the most absolute silence upon
  1767. our plans.
  1768. In the first place M. Fridrikssen wanted to know what success my
  1769. uncle had had at the library.
  1770. "Your library! why there is nothing but a few tattered books upon
  1771. almost deserted shelves."
  1772. "Indeed!" replied M. Fridrikssen, "why we possess eight thousand
  1773. volumes, many of them valuable and scarce, works in the old
  1774. Scandinavian language, and we have all the novelties that Copenhagen
  1775. sends us every year."
  1776. "Where do you keep your eight thousand volumes? For my part--"
  1777. "Oh, M. Liedenbrock, they are all over the country. In this icy
  1778. region we are fond of study. There is not a farmer nor a fisherman
  1779. that cannot read and does not read. Our principle is, that books,
  1780. instead of growing mouldy behind an iron grating, should be worn out
  1781. under the eyes of many readers. Therefore, these volumes are passed
  1782. from one to another, read over and over, referred to again and again;
  1783. and it often happens that they find their way back to their shelves
  1784. only after an absence of a year or two."
  1785. "And in the meantime," said my uncle rather spitefully, "strangers--"
  1786. "Well, what would you have? Foreigners have their libraries at home,
  1787. and the first essential for labouring people is that they should be
  1788. educated. I repeat to you the love of reading runs in Icelandic
  1789. blood. In 1816 we founded a prosperous literary society; learned
  1790. strangers think themselves honoured in becoming members of it. It
  1791. publishes books which educate our fellow-countrymen, and do the
  1792. country great service. If you will consent to be a corresponding
  1793. member, Herr Liedenbrock, you will be giving us great pleasure."
  1794. My uncle, who had already joined about a hundred learned societies,
  1795. accepted with a grace which evidently touched M. Fridrikssen.
  1796. "Now," said he, "will you be kind enough to tell me what books you
  1797. hoped to find in our library and I may perhaps enable you to consult
  1798. them?"
  1799. My uncle's eyes and mine met. He hesitated. This direct question went
  1800. to the root of the matter. But after a moment's reflection he decided
  1801. on speaking.
  1802. "Monsieur Fridrikssen, I wished to know if amongst your ancient books
  1803. you possessed any of the works of Arne Saknussemm?"
  1804. "Arne Saknussemm!" replied the Rejkiavik professor. "You mean that
  1805. learned sixteenth century savant, a naturalist, a chemist, and a
  1806. traveller?"
  1807. "Just so!"
  1808. "One of the glories of Icelandic literature and science?"
  1809. "That's the man."
  1810. "An illustrious man anywhere!"
  1811. "Quite so."
  1812. "And whose courage was equal to his genius!"
  1813. "I see that you know him well."
  1814. My uncle was bathed in delight at hearing his hero thus described. He
  1815. feasted his eyes upon M. Fridrikssen's face.
  1816. "Well," he cried, "where are his works?"
  1817. "His works, we have them not."
  1818. "What--not in Iceland?"
  1819. "They are neither in Iceland nor anywhere else."
  1820. "Why is that?"
  1821. "Because Arne Saknussemm was persecuted for heresy, and in 1573 his
  1822. books were burned by the hands of the common hangman."
  1823. "Very good! Excellent!" cried my uncle, to the great scandal of the
  1824. professor of natural history.
  1825. "What!" he cried.
  1826. "Yes, yes; now it is all clear, now it is all unravelled; and I see
  1827. why Saknussemm, put into the Index Expurgatorius, and compelled to
  1828. hide the discoveries made by his genius, was obliged to bury in an
  1829. incomprehensible cryptogram the secret--"
  1830. "What secret?" asked M. Fridrikssen, starting.
  1831. "Oh, just a secret which--" my uncle stammered.
  1832. "Have you some private document in your possession?" asked our host.
  1833. "No; I was only supposing a case."
  1834. "Oh, very well," answered M. Fridrikssen, who was kind enough not to
  1835. pursue the subject when he had noticed the embarrassment of his
  1836. friend. "I hope you will not leave our island until you have seen
  1837. some of its mineralogical wealth."
  1838. "Certainly," replied my uncle; "but I am rather late; or have not
  1839. others been here before me?"
  1840. "Yes, Herr Liedenbrock; the labours of MM. Olafsen and Povelsen,
  1841. pursued by order of the king, the researches of Tro�l the scientific
  1842. mission of MM. Gaimard and Robert on the French corvette _La
  1843. Recherche,_ [1] and lately the observations of scientific men who
  1844. came in the _Reine Hortense,_ have added materially to our knowledge
  1845. of Iceland. But I assure you there is plenty left."
  1846. "Do you think so?" said my uncle, pretending to look very modest, and
  1847. trying to hide the curiosity was flashing out of his eyes.
  1848. "Oh, yes; how many mountains, glaciers, and volcanoes there are to
  1849. study, which are as yet but imperfectly known! Then, without going
  1850. any further, that mountain in the horizon. That is Sn�fell."
  1851. "Ah!" said my uncle, as coolly as he was able, "is that Sn�fell?"
  1852. "Yes; one of the most curious volcanoes, and the crater of which has
  1853. scarcely ever been visited."
  1854. "Is it extinct?"
  1855. "Oh, yes; more than five hundred years."
  1856. "Well," replied my uncle, who was frantically locking his legs together
  1857. to keep himself from jumping up in the air, "that is where I mean to
  1858. begin my geological studies, there on that Seffel--Fessel--what do you
  1859. call it?"
  1860. "Sn�fell," replied the excellent M. Fridrikssen.
  1861. This part of the conversation was in Latin; I had understood every
  1862. word of it, and I could hardly conceal my amusement at seeing my
  1863. uncle trying to keep down the excitement and satisfaction which were
  1864. brimming over in every limb and every feature. He tried hard to put
  1865. on an innocent little expression of simplicity; but it looked like a
  1866. diabolical grin.
  1867. [1] _Recherche_ was sent out in 1835 by Admiral Duperr� to learn the
  1868. fate of the lost expedition of M. de Blosseville in the _Lilloise_
  1869. which has never been heard of.
  1870. "Yes," said he, "your words decide me. We will try to scale that
  1871. Sn�fell; perhaps even we may pursue our studies in its crater!"
  1872. "I am very sorry," said M. Fridrikssen, "that my engagements will not
  1873. allow me to absent myself, or I would have accompanied you myself
  1874. with both pleasure and profit."
  1875. "Oh, no, no!" replied my uncle with great animation, "we would not
  1876. disturb any one for the world, M. Fridrikssen. Still, I thank you
  1877. with all my heart: the company of such a talented man would have been
  1878. very serviceable, but the duties of your profession--"
  1879. I am glad to think that our host, in the innocence of his Icelandic
  1880. soul, was blind to the transparent artifices of my uncle.
  1881. "I very much approve of your beginning with that volcano, M.
  1882. Liedenbrock. You will gather a harvest of interesting observations.
  1883. But, tell me, how do you expect to get to the peninsula of Sn�fell?"
  1884. "By sea, crossing the bay. That's the most direct way."
  1885. "No doubt; but it is impossible."
  1886. "Why?"
  1887. "Because we don't possess a single boat at Rejkiavik."
  1888. "You don't mean to say so?"
  1889. "You will have to go by land, following the shore. It will be longer,
  1890. but more interesting."
  1891. "Very well, then; and now I shall have to see about a guide."
  1892. "I have one to offer you."
  1893. "A safe, intelligent man."
  1894. "Yes; an inhabitant of that peninsula. He is an eider-down hunter, and
  1895. very clever. He speaks Danish perfectly."
  1896. "When can I see him?"
  1897. "To-morrow, if you like."
  1898. "Why not to-day?"
  1899. "Because he won't be here till to-morrow."
  1900. "To-morrow, then," added my uncle with a sigh.
  1901. This momentous conversation ended in a few minutes with warm
  1902. acknowledgments paid by the German to the Icelandic Professor. At
  1903. this dinner my uncle had just elicited important facts, amongst
  1904. others, the history of Saknussemm, the reason of the mysterious
  1905. document, that his host would not accompany him in his expedition,
  1906. and that the very next day a guide would be waiting upon him.
  1907. CHAPTER XI.
  1908. A GUIDE FOUND TO THE CENTRE OF THE EARTH
  1909. In the evening I took a short walk on the beach and returned at night
  1910. to my plank-bed, where I slept soundly all night.
  1911. When I awoke I heard my uncle talking at a great rate in the next
  1912. room. I immediately dressed and joined him.
  1913. He was conversing in the Danish language with a tall man, of robust
  1914. build. This fine fellow must have been possessed of great strength.
  1915. His eyes, set in a large and ingenuous face, seemed to me very
  1916. intelligent; they were of a dreamy sea-blue. Long hair, which would
  1917. have been called red even in England, fell in long meshes upon his
  1918. broad shoulders. The movements of this native were lithe and supple;
  1919. but he made little use of his arms in speaking, like a man who knew
  1920. nothing or cared nothing about the language of gestures. His whole
  1921. appearance bespoke perfect calmness and self-possession, not
  1922. indolence but tranquillity. It was felt at once that he would be
  1923. beholden to nobody, that he worked for his own convenience, and that
  1924. nothing in this world could astonish or disturb his philosophic
  1925. calmness.
  1926. I caught the shades of this Icelander's character by the way in which
  1927. he listened to the impassioned flow of words which fell from the
  1928. Professor. He stood with arms crossed, perfectly unmoved by my
  1929. uncle's incessant gesticulations. A negative was expressed by a slow
  1930. movement of the head from left to right, an affirmative by a slight
  1931. bend, so slight that his long hair scarcely moved. He carried economy
  1932. of motion even to parsimony.
  1933. Certainly I should never have dreamt in looking at this man that he
  1934. was a hunter; he did not look likely to frighten his game, nor did he
  1935. seem as if he would even get near it. But the mystery was explained
  1936. when M. Fridrikssen informed me that this tranquil personage was only
  1937. a hunter of the eider duck, whose under plumage constitutes the chief
  1938. wealth of the island. This is the celebrated eider down, and it
  1939. requires no great rapidity of movement to get it.
  1940. Early in summer the female, a very pretty bird, goes to build her
  1941. nest among the rocks of the fiords with which the coast is fringed.
  1942. After building the nest she feathers it with down plucked from her
  1943. own breast. Immediately the hunter, or rather the trader, comes and
  1944. robs the nest, and the female recommences her work. This goes on as
  1945. long as she has any down left. When she has stripped herself bare the
  1946. male takes his turn to pluck himself. But as the coarse and hard
  1947. plumage of the male has no commercial value, the hunter does not take
  1948. the trouble to rob the nest of this; the female therefore lays her
  1949. eggs in the spoils of her mate, the young are hatched, and next year
  1950. the harvest begins again.
  1951. Now, as the eider duck does not select steep cliffs for her nest, but
  1952. rather the smooth terraced rocks which slope to the sea, the
  1953. Icelandic hunter might exercise his calling without any inconvenient
  1954. exertion. He was a farmer who was not obliged either to sow or reap
  1955. his harvest, but merely to gather it in.
  1956. This grave, phlegmatic, and silent individual was called Hans Bjelke;
  1957. and he came recommended by M. Fridrikssen. He was our future guide.
  1958. His manners were a singular contrast with my uncle's.
  1959. Nevertheless, they soon came to understand each other. Neither looked
  1960. at the amount of the payment: the one was ready to accept whatever
  1961. was offered; the other was ready to give whatever was demanded. Never
  1962. was bargain more readily concluded.
  1963. The result of the treaty was, that Hans engaged on his part to
  1964. conduct us to the village of Stapi, on the south shore of the Sn�fell
  1965. peninsula, at the very foot of the volcano. By land this would be
  1966. about twenty-two miles, to be done, said my uncle, in two days.
  1967. But when he learnt that the Danish mile was 24,000 feet long, he was
  1968. obliged to modify his calculations and allow seven or eight days for
  1969. the march.
  1970. Four horses were to be placed at our disposal--two to carry him and
  1971. me, two for the baggage. Hams, as was his custom, would go on foot.
  1972. He knew all that part of the coast perfectly, and promised to take us
  1973. the shortest way.
  1974. His engagement was not to terminate with our arrival at Stapi; he was
  1975. to continue in my uncle's service for the whole period of his
  1976. scientific researches, for the remuneration of three rixdales a week
  1977. (about twelve shillings), but it was an express article of the
  1978. covenant that his wages should be counted out to him every Saturday
  1979. at six o'clock in the evening, which, according to him, was one
  1980. indispensable part of the engagement.
  1981. The start was fixed for the 16th of June. My uncle wanted to pay the
  1982. hunter a portion in advance, but he refused with one word:
  1983. "_Efter,_" said he.
  1984. "After," said the Professor for my edification.
  1985. The treaty concluded, Hans silently withdrew.
  1986. "A famous fellow," cried my uncle; "but he little thinks of the
  1987. marvellous part he has to play in the future."
  1988. "So he is to go with us as far as--"
  1989. "As far as the centre of the earth, Axel."
  1990. Forty-eight hours were left before our departure; to my great regret
  1991. I had to employ them in preparations; for all our ingenuity was
  1992. required to pack every article to the best advantage; instruments
  1993. here, arms there, tools in this package, provisions in that: four
  1994. sets of packages in all.
  1995. The instruments were:
  1996. 1. An Eigel's centigrade thermometer, graduated up to 150 degrees
  1997. (302 degrees Fahr.), which seemed to me too much or too little. Too
  1998. much if the internal heat was to rise so high, for in this case we
  1999. should be baked, not enough to measure the temperature of springs or
  2000. any matter in a state of fusion.
  2001. 2. An aneroid barometer, to indicate extreme pressures of the
  2002. atmosphere. An ordinary barometer would not have answered the
  2003. purpose, as the pressure would increase during our descent to a point
  2004. which the mercurial barometer [1] would not register.
  2005. 3. A chronometer, made by Boissonnas, jun., of Geneva, accurately set
  2006. to the meridian of Hamburg.
  2007. 4. Two compasses, viz., a common compass and a dipping needle.
  2008. 5. A night glass.
  2009. 6. Two of Ruhmkorff's apparatus, which, by means of an electric
  2010. current, supplied a safe and handy portable light [2]
  2011. The arms consisted of two of Purdy's rifles and two brace of pistols.
  2012. But what did we want arms for? We had neither savages nor wild beasts
  2013. to fear, I supposed. But my uncle seemed to believe in his arsenal as
  2014. in his instruments, and more especially in a considerable quantity of
  2015. gun cotton, which is unaffected by moisture, and the explosive force
  2016. of which exceeds that of gunpowder.
  2017. [1] In M. Verne's book a 'manometer' is the instrument used, of which
  2018. very little is known. In a complete list of philosophical instruments
  2019. the translator cannot find the name. As he is assured by a first-rate
  2020. instrument maker, Chadburn, of Liverpool, that an aneroid can be
  2021. constructed to measure any depth, he has thought it best to furnish
  2022. the adventurous professor with this more familiar instrument. The
  2023. 'manometer' is generally known as a pressure gauge.--TRANS.
  2024. [2] Ruhmkorff's apparatus consists of a Bunsen pile worked with
  2025. bichromate of potash, which makes no smell; an induction coil carries
  2026. the electricity generated by the pile into communication with a
  2027. lantern of peculiar construction; in this lantern there is a spiral
  2028. glass tube from which the air has been excluded, and in which remains
  2029. only a residuum of carbonic acid gas or of nitrogen. When the
  2030. apparatus is put in action this gas becomes luminous, producing a
  2031. white steady light. The pile and coil are placed in a leathern bag
  2032. which the traveller carries over his shoulders; the lantern outside
  2033. of the bag throws sufficient light into deep darkness; it enables one
  2034. to venture without fear of explosions into the midst of the most
  2035. inflammable gases, and is not extinguished even in the deepest
  2036. waters. M. Ruhmkorff is a learned and most ingenious man of science;
  2037. his great discovery is his induction coil, which produces a powerful
  2038. stream of electricity. He obtained in 1864 the quinquennial prize of
  2039. 50,000 franc reserved by the French government for the most ingenious
  2040. application of electricity.
  2041. The tools comprised two pickaxes, two spades, a silk ropeladder,
  2042. three iron-tipped sticks, a hatchet, a hammer, a dozen wedges and
  2043. iron spikes, and a long knotted rope. Now this was a large load, for
  2044. the ladder was 300 feet long.
  2045. And there were provisions too: this was not a large parcel, but it
  2046. was comforting to know that of essence of beef and biscuits there
  2047. were six months' consumption. Spirits were the only liquid, and of
  2048. water we took none; but we had flasks, and my uncle depended on
  2049. springs from which to fill them. Whatever objections I hazarded as to
  2050. their quality, temperature, and even absence, remained ineffectual.
  2051. To complete the exact inventory of all our travelling accompaniments,
  2052. I must not forget a pocket medicine chest, containing blunt scissors,
  2053. splints for broken limbs, a piece of tape of unbleached linen,
  2054. bandages and compresses, lint, a lancet for bleeding, all dreadful
  2055. articles to take with one. Then there was a row of phials containing
  2056. dextrine, alcoholic ether, liquid acetate of lead, vinegar, and
  2057. ammonia drugs which afforded me no comfort. Finally, all the articles
  2058. needful to supply Ruhmkorff's apparatus.
  2059. My uncle did not forget a supply of tobacco, coarse grained powder,
  2060. and amadou, nor a leathern belt in which he carried a sufficient
  2061. quantity of gold, silver, and paper money. Six pairs of boots and
  2062. shoes, made waterproof with a composition of indiarubber and naphtha,
  2063. were packed amongst the tools.
  2064. "Clothed, shod, and equipped like this," said my uncle, "there is no
  2065. telling how far we may go."
  2066. The 14th was wholly spent in arranging all our different articles. In
  2067. the evening we dined with Baron Tramps; the mayor of Rejkiavik, and
  2068. Dr. Hyaltalin, the first medical man of the place, being of the
  2069. party. M. Fridrikssen was not there. I learned afterwards that he and
  2070. the Governor disagreed upon some question of administration, and did
  2071. not speak to each other. I therefore knew not a single word of all
  2072. that was said at this semi-official dinner; but I could not help
  2073. noticing that my uncle talked the whole time.
  2074. On the 15th our preparations were all made. Our host gave the
  2075. Professor very great pleasure by presenting him with a map of Iceland
  2076. far more complete than that of Hendersen. It was the map of M. Olaf
  2077. Nikolas Olsen, in the proportion of 1 to 480,000 of the actual size
  2078. of the island, and published by the Icelandic Literary Society. It
  2079. was a precious document for a mineralogist.
  2080. Our last evening was spent in intimate conversation with M.
  2081. Fridrikssen, with whom I felt the liveliest sympathy; then, after the
  2082. talk, succeeded, for me, at any rate, a disturbed and restless night.
  2083. At five in the morning I was awoke by the neighing and pawing of four
  2084. horses under my window. I dressed hastily and came down into the
  2085. street. Hans was finishing our packing, almost as it were without
  2086. moving a limb; and yet he did his work cleverly. My uncle made more
  2087. noise than execution, and the guide seemed to pay very little
  2088. attention to his energetic directions.
  2089. At six o'clock our preparations were over. M. Fridrikssen shook hands
  2090. with us. My uncle thanked him heartily for his extreme kindness. I
  2091. constructed a few fine Latin sentences to express my cordial
  2092. farewell. Then we bestrode our steeds and with his last adieu M.
  2093. Fridrikssen treated me to a line of Virgil eminently applicable to
  2094. such uncertain wanderers as we were likely to be:
  2095. "Et quacumque viam dedent fortuna sequamur."
  2096. "Therever fortune clears a way,
  2097. Thither our ready footsteps stray."
  2098. CHAPTER XII.
  2099. A BARREN LAND
  2100. We had started under a sky overcast but calm. There was no fear of
  2101. heat, none of disastrous rain. It was just the weather for tourists.
  2102. The pleasure of riding on horseback over an unknown country made me
  2103. easy to be pleased at our first start. I threw myself wholly into the
  2104. pleasure of the trip, and enjoyed the feeling of freedom and
  2105. satisfied desire. I was beginning to take a real share in the
  2106. enterprise.
  2107. "Besides," I said to myself, "where's the risk? Here we are
  2108. travelling all through a most interesting country! We are about to
  2109. climb a very remarkable mountain; at the worst we are going to
  2110. scramble down an extinct crater. It is evident that Saknussemm did
  2111. nothing more than this. As for a passage leading to the centre of the
  2112. globe, it is mere rubbish! perfectly impossible! Very well, then; let
  2113. us get all the good we can out of this expedition, and don't let us
  2114. haggle about the chances."
  2115. This reasoning having settled my mind, we got out of Rejkiavik.
  2116. Hans moved steadily on, keeping ahead of us at an even, smooth, and
  2117. rapid pace. The baggage horses followed him without giving any
  2118. trouble. Then came my uncle and myself, looking not so very
  2119. ill-mounted on our small but hardy animals.
  2120. Iceland is one of the largest islands in Europe. Its surface is
  2121. 14,000 square miles, and it contains but 16,000 inhabitants.
  2122. Geographers have divided it into four quarters, and we were crossing
  2123. diagonally the south-west quarter, called the 'Sudvester Fjordungr.'
  2124. On leaving Rejkiavik Hans took us by the seashore. We passed lean
  2125. pastures which were trying very hard, but in vain, to look green;
  2126. yellow came out best. The rugged peaks of the trachyte rocks
  2127. presented faint outlines on the eastern horizon; at times a few
  2128. patches of snow, concentrating the vague light, glittered upon the
  2129. slopes of the distant mountains; certain peaks, boldly uprising,
  2130. passed through the grey clouds, and reappeared above the moving
  2131. mists, like breakers emerging in the heavens.
  2132. Often these chains of barren rocks made a dip towards the sea, and
  2133. encroached upon the scanty pasturage: but there was always enough
  2134. room to pass. Besides, our horses instinctively chose the easiest
  2135. places without ever slackening their pace. My uncle was refused even
  2136. the satisfaction of stirring up his beast with whip or voice. He had
  2137. no excuse for being impatient. I could not help smiling to see so
  2138. tall a man on so small a pony, and as his long legs nearly touched
  2139. the ground he looked like a six-legged centaur.
  2140. "Good horse! good horse!" he kept saying. "You will see, Axel, that
  2141. there is no more sagacious animal than the Icelandic horse. He is
  2142. stopped by neither snow, nor storm, nor impassable roads, nor rocks,
  2143. glaciers, or anything. He is courageous, sober, and surefooted. He
  2144. never makes a false step, never shies. If there is a river or fiord
  2145. to cross (and we shall meet with many) you will see him plunge in at
  2146. once, just as if he were amphibious, and gain the opposite bank. But
  2147. we must not hurry him; we must let him have his way, and we shall get
  2148. on at the rate of thirty miles a day."
  2149. "We may; but how about our guide?"
  2150. "Oh, never mind him. People like him get over the ground without a
  2151. thought. There is so little action in this man that he will never get
  2152. tired; and besides, if he wants it, he shall have my horse. I shall
  2153. get cramped if I don't have a little action. The arms are all right,
  2154. but the legs want exercise."
  2155. We were advancing at a rapid pace. The country was already almost a
  2156. desert. Here and there was a lonely farm, called a bo�r built either
  2157. of wood, or of sods, or of pieces of lava, looking like a poor beggar
  2158. by the wayside. These ruinous huts seemed to solicit charity from
  2159. passers-by; and on very small provocation we should have given alms
  2160. for the relief of the poor inmates. In this country there were no
  2161. roads and paths, and the poor vegetation, however slow, would soon
  2162. efface the rare travellers' footsteps.
  2163. Yet this part of the province, at a very small distance from the
  2164. capital, is reckoned among the inhabited and cultivated portions of
  2165. Iceland. What, then, must other tracts be, more desert than this
  2166. desert? In the first half mile we had not seen one farmer standing
  2167. before his cabin door, nor one shepherd tending a flock less wild
  2168. than himself, nothing but a few cows and sheep left to themselves.
  2169. What then would be those convulsed regions upon which we were
  2170. advancing, regions subject to the dire phenomena of eruptions, the
  2171. offspring of volcanic explosions and subterranean convulsions?
  2172. We were to know them before long, but on consulting Olsen's map, I
  2173. saw that they would be avoided by winding along the seashore. In
  2174. fact, the great plutonic action is confined to the central portion of
  2175. the island; there, rocks of the trappean and volcanic class,
  2176. including trachyte, basalt, and tuffs and agglomerates associated
  2177. with streams of lava, have made this a land of supernatural horrors.
  2178. I had no idea of the spectacle which was awaiting us in the peninsula
  2179. of Sn�fell, where these ruins of a fiery nature have formed a
  2180. frightful chaos.
  2181. In two hours from Rejkiavik we arrived at the burgh of Gufunes,
  2182. called Aolkirkja, or principal church. There was nothing remarkable
  2183. here but a few houses, scarcely enough for a German hamlet.
  2184. Hans stopped here half an hour. He shared with us our frugal
  2185. breakfast; answering my uncle's questions about the road and our
  2186. resting place that night with merely yes or no, except when he said
  2187. "Gard�r."
  2188. I consulted the map to see where Gard�r was. I saw there was a small
  2189. town of that name on the banks of the Hvalfiord, four miles from
  2190. Rejkiavik. I showed it to my uncle.
  2191. "Four miles only!" he exclaimed; "four miles out of twenty-eight.
  2192. What a nice little walk!"
  2193. He was about to make an observation to the guide, who without
  2194. answering resumed his place at the head, and went on his way.
  2195. Three hours later, still treading on the colourless grass of the
  2196. pasture land, we had to work round the Kolla fiord, a longer way but
  2197. an easier one than across that inlet. We soon entered into a
  2198. 'pingstaoer' or parish called Ejulberg, from whose steeple twelve
  2199. o'clock would have struck, if Icelandic churches were rich enough to
  2200. possess clocks. But they are like the parishioners who have no
  2201. watches and do without.
  2202. There our horses were baited; then taking the narrow path to left
  2203. between a chain of hills and the sea, they carried us to our next
  2204. stage, the aolkirkja of Brant�r and one mile farther on, to Saurbo�r
  2205. 'Annexia,' a chapel of ease built on the south shore of the Hvalfiord.
  2206. It was now four o'clock, and we had gone four Icelandic miles, or
  2207. twenty-four English miles.
  2208. In that place the fiord was at least three English miles wide; the
  2209. waves rolled with a rushing din upon the sharp-pointed rocks; this
  2210. inlet was confined between walls of rock, precipices crowned by sharp
  2211. peaks 2,000 feet high, and remarkable for the brown strata which
  2212. separated the beds of reddish tuff. However much I might respect the
  2213. intelligence of our quadrupeds, I hardly cared to put it to the test
  2214. by trusting myself to it on horseback across an arm of the sea.
  2215. If they are as intelligent as they are said to be, I thought, they
  2216. won't try it. In any case, I will tax my intelligence to direct
  2217. theirs.
  2218. But my uncle would not wait. He spurred on to the edge. His steed
  2219. lowered his head to examine the nearest waves and stopped. My uncle,
  2220. who had an instinct of his own, too, applied pressure, and was again
  2221. refused by the animal significantly shaking his head. Then followed
  2222. strong language, and the whip; but the brute answered these arguments
  2223. with kicks and endeavours to throw his rider. At last the clever
  2224. little pony, with a bend of his knees, started from under the
  2225. Professor's legs, and left him standing upon two boulders on the
  2226. shore just like the colossus of Rhodes.
  2227. "Confounded brute!" cried the unhorsed horseman, suddenly degraded
  2228. into a pedestrian, just as ashamed as a cavalry officer degraded to a
  2229. foot soldier.
  2230. "_F�rja,_" said the guide, touching his shoulder.
  2231. "What! a boat?"
  2232. "_Der,_" replied Hans, pointing to one.
  2233. "Yes," I cried; "there is a boat."
  2234. "Why did not you say so then? Well, let us go on."
  2235. "_Tidvatten,_" said the guide.
  2236. "What is he saying?"
  2237. "He says tide," said my uncle, translating the Danish word.
  2238. "No doubt we must wait for the tide."
  2239. "_F�rbida,_" said my uncle.
  2240. "_Ja,_" replied Hans.
  2241. My uncle stamped with his foot, while the horses went on to the boat.
  2242. I perfectly understood the necessity of abiding a particular moment
  2243. of the tide to undertake the crossing of the fiord, when, the sea
  2244. having reached its greatest height, it should be slack water. Then
  2245. the ebb and flow have no sensible effect, and the boat does not risk
  2246. being carried either to the bottom or out to sea.
  2247. That favourable moment arrived only with six o'clock; when my uncle,
  2248. myself, the guide, two other passengers and the four horses, trusted
  2249. ourselves to a somewhat fragile raft. Accustomed as I was to the
  2250. swift and sure steamers on the Elbe, I found the oars of the rowers
  2251. rather a slow means of propulsion. It took us more than an hour to
  2252. cross the fiord; but the passage was effected without any mishap.
  2253. In another half hour we had reached the aolkirkja of Gard�r
  2254. CHAPTER XIII.
  2255. HOSPITALITY UNDER THE ARCTIC CIRCLE
  2256. It ought to have been night-time, but under the 65th parallel there
  2257. was nothing surprising in the nocturnal polar light. In Iceland
  2258. during the months of June and July the sun does not set.
  2259. But the temperature was much lower. I was cold and more hungry than
  2260. cold. Welcome was the sight of the bo�r which was hospitably opened
  2261. to receive us.
  2262. It was a peasant's house, but in point of hospitality it was equal to
  2263. a king's. On our arrival the master came with outstretched hands, and
  2264. without more ceremony he beckoned us to follow him.
  2265. To accompany him down the long, narrow, dark passage, would have been
  2266. impossible. Therefore, we followed, as he bid us. The building was
  2267. constructed of roughly squared timbers, with rooms on both sides,
  2268. four in number, all opening out into the one passage: these were the
  2269. kitchen, the weaving shop, the badstofa, or family sleeping-room, and
  2270. the visitors' room, which was the best of all. My uncle, whose height
  2271. had not been thought of in building the house, of course hit his head
  2272. several times against the beams that projected from the ceilings.
  2273. We were introduced into our apartment, a large room with a floor of
  2274. earth stamped hard down, and lighted by a window, the panes of which
  2275. were formed of sheep's bladder, not admitting too much light. The
  2276. sleeping accommodation consisted of dry litter, thrown into two
  2277. wooden frames painted red, and ornamented with Icelandic sentences. I
  2278. was hardly expecting so much comfort; the only discomfort proceeded
  2279. from the strong odour of dried fish, hung meat, and sour milk, of
  2280. which my nose made bitter complaints.
  2281. When we had laid aside our travelling wraps the voice of the host was
  2282. heard inviting us to the kitchen, the only room where a fire was
  2283. lighted even in the severest cold.
  2284. My uncle lost no time in obeying the friendly call, nor was I slack
  2285. in following.
  2286. The kitchen chimney was constructed on the ancient pattern; in the
  2287. middle of the room was a stone for a hearth, over it in the roof a
  2288. hole to let the smoke escape. The kitchen was also a dining-room.
  2289. At our entrance the host, as if he had never seen us, greeted us with
  2290. the word "_S�llvertu,_" which means "be happy," and came and kissed
  2291. us on the cheek.
  2292. After him his wife pronounced the same words, accompanied with the
  2293. same ceremonial; then the two placing their hands upon their hearts,
  2294. inclined profoundly before us.
  2295. I hasten to inform the reader that this Icelandic lady was the mother
  2296. of nineteen children, all, big and little, swarming in the midst of
  2297. the dense wreaths of smoke with which the fire on the hearth filled
  2298. the chamber. Every moment I noticed a fair-haired and rather
  2299. melancholy face peeping out of the rolling volumes of smoke--they
  2300. were a perfect cluster of unwashed angels.
  2301. My uncle and I treated this little tribe with kindness; and in a very
  2302. short time we each had three or four of these brats on our shoulders,
  2303. as many on our laps, and the rest between our knees. Those who could
  2304. speak kept repeating "_S�llvertu,_" in every conceivable tone; those
  2305. that could not speak made up for that want by shrill cries.
  2306. This concert was brought to a close by the announcement of dinner. At
  2307. that moment our hunter returned, who had been seeing his horses
  2308. provided for; that is to say, he had economically let them loose in
  2309. the fields, where the poor beasts had to content themselves with the
  2310. scanty moss they could pull off the rocks and a few meagre sea weeds,
  2311. and the next day they would not fail to come of themselves and resume
  2312. the labours of the previous day.
  2313. "_S�llvertu,_" said Hans.
  2314. Then calmly, automatically, and dispassionately he kissed the host,
  2315. the hostess, and their nineteen children.
  2316. This ceremony over, we sat at table, twenty-four in number, and
  2317. therefore one upon another. The luckiest had only two urchins upon
  2318. their knees.
  2319. But silence reigned in all this little world at the arrival of the
  2320. soup, and the national taciturnity resumed its empire even over the
  2321. children. The host served out to us a soup made of lichen and by no
  2322. means unpleasant, then an immense piece of dried fish floating in
  2323. butter rancid with twenty years' keeping, and, therefore, according
  2324. to Icelandic gastronomy, much preferable to fresh butter. Along with
  2325. this, we had 'skye,' a sort of clotted milk, with biscuits, and a
  2326. liquid prepared from juniper berries; for beverage we had a thin milk
  2327. mixed with water, called in this country 'blanda.' It is not for me
  2328. to decide whether this diet is wholesome or not; all I can say is,
  2329. that I was desperately hungry, and that at dessert I swallowed to the
  2330. very last gulp of a thick broth made from buckwheat.
  2331. As soon as the meal was over the children disappeared, and their
  2332. elders gathered round the peat fire, which also burnt such
  2333. miscellaneous fuel as briars, cow-dung, and fishbones. After this
  2334. little pinch of warmth the different groups retired to their
  2335. respective rooms. Our hostess hospitably offered us her assistance in
  2336. undressing, according to Icelandic usage; but on our gracefully
  2337. declining, she insisted no longer, and I was able at last to curl
  2338. myself up in my mossy bed.
  2339. At five next morning we bade our host farewell, my uncle with
  2340. difficulty persuading him to accept a proper remuneration; and Hans
  2341. signalled the start.
  2342. At a hundred yards from Gard�r the soil began to change its aspect;
  2343. it became boggy and less favourable to progress. On our right the
  2344. chain of mountains was indefinitely prolonged like an immense system
  2345. of natural fortifications, of which we were following the
  2346. counter-scarp or lesser steep; often we were met by streams, which we
  2347. had to ford with great care, not to wet our packages.
  2348. The desert became wider and more hideous; yet from time to time we
  2349. seemed to descry a human figure that fled at our approach, sometimes
  2350. a sharp turn would bring us suddenly within a short distance of one
  2351. of these spectres, and I was filled with loathing at the sight of a
  2352. huge deformed head, the skin shining and hairless, and repulsive
  2353. sores visible through the gaps in the poor creature's wretched rags.
  2354. The unhappy being forbore to approach us and offer his misshapen
  2355. hand. He fled away, but not before Hans had saluted him with the
  2356. customary "_S�llvertu._"
  2357. "_Spetelsk,_" said he.
  2358. "A leper!" my uncle repeated.
  2359. This word produced a repulsive effect. The horrible disease of
  2360. leprosy is too common in Iceland; it is not contagious, but
  2361. hereditary, and lepers are forbidden to marry.
  2362. These apparitions were not cheerful, and did not throw any charm over
  2363. the less and less attractive landscapes. The last tufts of grass had
  2364. disappeared from beneath our feet. Not a tree was to be seen, unless
  2365. we except a few dwarf birches as low as brushwood. Not an animal but
  2366. a few wandering ponies that their owners would not feed. Sometimes we
  2367. could see a hawk balancing himself on his wings under the grey cloud,
  2368. and then darting away south with rapid flight. I felt melancholy
  2369. under this savage aspect of nature, and my thoughts went away to the
  2370. cheerful scenes I had left in the far south.
  2371. We had to cross a few narrow fiords, and at last quite a wide gulf;
  2372. the tide, then high, allowed us to pass over without delay, and to
  2373. reach the hamlet of Alftanes, one mile beyond.
  2374. That evening, after having forded two rivers full of trout and pike,
  2375. called Alfa and Heta, we were obliged to spend the night in a
  2376. deserted building worthy to be haunted by all the elfins of
  2377. Scandinavia. The ice king certainly held court here, and gave us all
  2378. night long samples of what he could do.
  2379. No particular event marked the next day. Bogs, dead levels,
  2380. melancholy desert tracks, wherever we travelled. By nightfall we had
  2381. accomplished half our journey, and we lay at Kr�solbt.
  2382. On the 19th of June, for about a mile, that is an Icelandic mile, we
  2383. walked upon hardened lava; this ground is called in the country
  2384. 'hraun'; the writhen surface presented the appearance of distorted,
  2385. twisted cables, sometimes stretched in length, sometimes contorted
  2386. together; an immense torrent, once liquid, now solid, ran from the
  2387. nearest mountains, now extinct volcanoes, but the ruins around
  2388. revealed the violence of the past eruptions. Yet here and there were
  2389. a few jets of steam from hot springs.
  2390. We had no time to watch these phenomena; we had to proceed on our
  2391. way. Soon at the foot of the mountains the boggy land reappeared,
  2392. intersected by little lakes. Our route now lay westward; we had
  2393. turned the great bay of Faxa, and the twin peaks of Sn�fell rose
  2394. white into the cloudy sky at the distance of at least five miles.
  2395. The horses did their duty well, no difficulties stopped them in their
  2396. steady career. I was getting tired; but my uncle was as firm and
  2397. straight as he was at our first start. I could not help admiring his
  2398. persistency, as well as the hunter's, who treated our expedition like
  2399. a mere promenade.
  2400. June 20. At six p.m. we reached B�dir, a village on the sea shore;
  2401. and the guide there claiming his due, my uncle settled with him. It
  2402. was Hans' own family, that is, his uncles and cousins, who gave us
  2403. hospitality; we were kindly received, and without taxing too much the
  2404. goodness of these folks, I would willingly have tarried here to
  2405. recruit after my fatigues. But my uncle, who wanted no recruiting,
  2406. would not hear of it, and the next morning we had to bestride our
  2407. beasts again.
  2408. The soil told of the neighbourhood of the mountain, whose granite
  2409. foundations rose from the earth like the knotted roots of some huge
  2410. oak. We were rounding the immense base of the volcano. The Professor
  2411. hardly took his eyes off it. He tossed up his arms and seemed to defy
  2412. it, and to declare, "There stands the giant that I shall conquer."
  2413. After about four hours' walking the horses stopped of their own
  2414. accord at the door of the priest's house at Stapi.
  2415. CHAPTER XIV.
  2416. BUT ARCTICS CAN BE INHOSPITABLE, TOO
  2417. Stapi is a village consisting of about thirty huts, built of lava, at
  2418. the south side of the base of the volcano. It extends along the inner
  2419. edge of a small fiord, inclosed between basaltic walls of the
  2420. strangest construction.
  2421. Basalt is a brownish rock of igneous origin. It assumes regular
  2422. forms, the arrangement of which is often very surprising. Here nature
  2423. had done her work geometrically, with square and compass and plummet.
  2424. Everywhere else her art consists alone in throwing down huge masses
  2425. together in disorder. You see cones imperfectly formed, irregular
  2426. pyramids, with a fantastic disarrangement of lines; but here, as if
  2427. to exhibit an example of regularity, though in advance of the very
  2428. earliest architects, she has created a severely simple order of
  2429. architecture, never surpassed either by the splendours of Babylon or
  2430. the wonders of Greece.
  2431. I had heard of the Giant's Causeway in Ireland, and Fingal's Cave in
  2432. Staffa, one of the Hebrides; but I had never yet seen a basaltic
  2433. formation.
  2434. At Stapi I beheld this phenomenon in all its beauty.
  2435. The wall that confined the fiord, like all the coast of the
  2436. peninsula, was composed of a series of vertical columns thirty feet
  2437. high. These straight shafts, of fair proportions, supported an
  2438. architrave of horizontal slabs, the overhanging portion of which
  2439. formed a semi-arch over the sea. At intervals, under this natural
  2440. shelter, there spread out vaulted entrances in beautiful curves, into
  2441. which the waves came dashing with foam and spray. A few shafts of
  2442. basalt, torn from their hold by the fury of tempests, lay along the
  2443. soil like remains of an ancient temple, in ruins for ever fresh, and
  2444. over which centuries passed without leaving a trace of age upon them.
  2445. This was our last stage upon the earth. Hans had exhibited great
  2446. intelligence, and it gave me some little comfort to think then that
  2447. he was not going to leave us.
  2448. On arriving at the door of the rector's house, which was not
  2449. different from the others, I saw a man shoeing a horse, hammer in
  2450. hand, and with a leathern apron on.
  2451. "_S�llvertu,_" said the hunter.
  2452. "_God dag,_" said the blacksmith in good Danish.
  2453. "_Kyrkoherde,_" said Hans, turning round to my uncle.
  2454. "The rector," repeated the Professor. "It seems, Axel, that this good
  2455. man is the rector."
  2456. Our guide in the meanwhile was making the 'kyrkoherde' aware of the
  2457. position of things; when the latter, suspending his labours for a
  2458. moment, uttered a sound no doubt understood between horses and
  2459. farriers, and immediately a tall and ugly hag appeared from the hut.
  2460. She must have been six feet at the least. I was in great alarm lest
  2461. she should treat me to the Icelandic kiss; but there was no occasion
  2462. to fear, nor did she do the honours at all too gracefully.
  2463. The visitors' room seemed to me the worst in the whole cabin. It was
  2464. close, dirty, and evil smelling. But we had to be content. The rector
  2465. did not to go in for antique hospitality. Very far from it. Before
  2466. the day was over I saw that we had to do with a blacksmith, a
  2467. fisherman, a hunter, a joiner, but not at all with a minister of the
  2468. Gospel. To be sure, it was a week-day; perhaps on a Sunday he made
  2469. amends.
  2470. I don't mean to say anything against these poor priests, who after
  2471. all are very wretched. They receive from the Danish Government a
  2472. ridiculously small pittance, and they get from the parish the fourth
  2473. part of the tithe, which does not come to sixty marks a year (about
  2474. �4). Hence the necessity to work for their livelihood; but after
  2475. fishing, hunting, and shoeing horses for any length of time, one soon
  2476. gets into the ways and manners of fishermen, hunters, and farriers,
  2477. and other rather rude and uncultivated people; and that evening I
  2478. found out that temperance was not among the virtues that
  2479. distinguished my host.
  2480. My uncle soon discovered what sort of a man he had to do with;
  2481. instead of a good and learned man he found a rude and coarse peasant.
  2482. He therefore resolved to commence the grand expedition at once, and
  2483. to leave this inhospitable parsonage. He cared nothing about fatigue,
  2484. and resolved to spend some days upon the mountain.
  2485. The preparations for our departure were therefore made the very day
  2486. after our arrival at Stapi. Hans hired the services of three
  2487. Icelanders to do the duty of the horses in the transport of the
  2488. burdens; but as soon as we had arrived at the crater these natives
  2489. were to turn back and leave us to our own devices. This was to be
  2490. clearly understood.
  2491. My uncle now took the opportunity to explain to Hans that it was his
  2492. intention to explore the interior of the volcano to its farthest
  2493. limits.
  2494. Hans merely nodded. There or elsewhere, down in the bowels of the
  2495. earth, or anywhere on the surface, all was alike to him. For my own
  2496. part the incidents of the journey had hitherto kept me amused, and
  2497. made me forgetful of coming evils; but now my fears again were
  2498. beginning to get the better of me. But what could I do? The place to
  2499. resist the Professor would have been Hamburg, not the foot of Sn�fell.
  2500. One thought, above all others, harassed and alarmed me; it was one
  2501. calculated to shake firmer nerves than mine.
  2502. Now, thought I, here we are, about to climb Sn�fell. Very good. We
  2503. will explore the crater. Very good, too, others have done as much
  2504. without dying for it. But that is not all. If there is a way to
  2505. penetrate into the very bowels of the island, if that ill-advised
  2506. Saknussemm has told a true tale, we shall lose our way amidst the
  2507. deep subterranean passages of this volcano. Now, there is no proof
  2508. that Sn�fell is extinct. Who can assure us that an eruption is not
  2509. brewing at this very moment? Does it follow that because the monster
  2510. has slept since 1229 he must therefore never awake again? And if he
  2511. wakes up presently, where shall we be?
  2512. It was worth while debating this question, and I did debate it. I
  2513. could not sleep for dreaming about eruptions. Now, the part of
  2514. ejected scoriae and ashes seemed to my mind a very rough one to act.
  2515. So, at last, when I could hold out no longer, I resolved to lay the
  2516. case before my uncle, as prudently and as cautiously as possible,
  2517. just under the form of an almost impossible hypothesis.
  2518. I went to him. I communicated my fears to him, and drew back a step
  2519. to give him room for the explosion which I knew must follow. But I
  2520. was mistaken.
  2521. "I was thinking of that," he replied with great simplicity.
  2522. What could those words mean?--Was he actually going to listen to
  2523. reason? Was he contemplating the abandonment of his plans? This was
  2524. too good to be true.
  2525. After a few moments' silence, during which I dared not question him,
  2526. he resumed:
  2527. "I was thinking of that. Ever since we arrived at Stapi I have been
  2528. occupied with the important question you have just opened, for we
  2529. must not be guilty of imprudence."
  2530. "No, indeed!" I replied with forcible emphasis.
  2531. "For six hundred years Sn�fell has been dumb; but he may speak again.
  2532. Now, eruptions are always preceded by certain well-known phenomena. I
  2533. have therefore examined the natives, I have studied external
  2534. appearances, and I can assure you, Axel, that there will be no
  2535. eruption."
  2536. At this positive affirmation I stood amazed and speechless.
  2537. "You don't doubt my word?" said my uncle. "Well, follow me."
  2538. I obeyed like an automaton. Coming out from the priest's house, the
  2539. Professor took a straight road, which, through an opening in the
  2540. basaltic wall, led away from the sea. We were soon in the open
  2541. country, if one may give that name to a vast extent of mounds of
  2542. volcanic products. This tract seemed crushed under a rain of enormous
  2543. ejected rocks of trap, basalt, granite, and all kinds of igneous
  2544. rocks.
  2545. Here and there I could see puffs and jets of steam curling up into
  2546. the air, called in Icelandic 'reykir,' issuing from thermal springs,
  2547. and indicating by their motion the volcanic energy underneath. This
  2548. seemed to justify my fears: But I fell from the height of my new-born
  2549. hopes when my uncle said:
  2550. "You see all these volumes of steam, Axel; well, they demonstrate
  2551. that we have nothing to fear from the fury of a volcanic eruption."
  2552. "Am I to believe that?" I cried.
  2553. "Understand this clearly," added the Professor. "At the approach of
  2554. an eruption these jets would redouble their activity, but disappear
  2555. altogether during the period of the eruption. For the elastic fluids,
  2556. being no longer under pressure, go off by way of the crater instead
  2557. of escaping by their usual passages through the fissures in the soil.
  2558. Therefore, if these vapours remain in their usual condition, if they
  2559. display no augmentation of force, and if you add to this the
  2560. observation that the wind and rain are not ceasing and being replaced
  2561. by a still and heavy atmosphere, then you may affirm that no eruption
  2562. is preparing."
  2563. "But--"
  2564. 'No more; that is sufficient. When science has uttered her voice, let
  2565. babblers hold their peace.'
  2566. I returned to the parsonage, very crestfallen. My uncle had beaten me
  2567. with the weapons of science. Still I had one hope left, and this was,
  2568. that when we had reached the bottom of the crater it would be
  2569. impossible, for want of a passage, to go deeper, in spite of all the
  2570. Saknussemm's in Iceland.
  2571. I spent that whole night in one constant nightmare; in the heart of a
  2572. volcano, and from the deepest depths of the earth I saw myself tossed
  2573. up amongst the interplanetary spaces under the form of an eruptive
  2574. rock.
  2575. The next day, June 23, Hans was awaiting us with his companions
  2576. carrying provisions, tools, and instruments; two iron pointed sticks,
  2577. two rifles, and two shot belts were for my uncle and myself. Hans, as
  2578. a cautious man, had added to our luggage a leathern bottle full of
  2579. water, which, with that in our flasks, would ensure us a supply of
  2580. water for eight days.
  2581. It was nine in the morning. The priest and his tall Meg�ra were
  2582. awaiting us at the door. We supposed they were standing there to bid
  2583. us a kind farewell. But the farewell was put in the unexpected form
  2584. of a heavy bill, in which everything was charged, even to the very
  2585. air we breathed in the pastoral house, infected as it was. This
  2586. worthy couple were fleecing us just as a Swiss innkeeper might have
  2587. done, and estimated their imperfect hospitality at the highest price.
  2588. My uncle paid without a remark: a man who is starting for the centre
  2589. of the earth need not be particular about a few rix dollars.
  2590. This point being settled, Hans gave the signal, and we soon left
  2591. Stapi behind us.
  2592. CHAPTER XV.
  2593. SN�FELL AT LAST
  2594. Sn�fell is 5,000 feet high. Its double cone forms the limit of a
  2595. trachytic belt which stands out distinctly in the mountain system of
  2596. the island. From our starting point we could see the two peaks boldly
  2597. projected against the dark grey sky; I could see an enormous cap of
  2598. snow coming low down upon the giant's brow.
  2599. We walked in single file, headed by the hunter, who ascended by
  2600. narrow tracks, where two could not have gone abreast. There was
  2601. therefore no room for conversation.
  2602. After we had passed the basaltic wall of the fiord of Stapi we passed
  2603. over a vegetable fibrous peat bog, left from the ancient vegetation
  2604. of this peninsula. The vast quantity of this unworked fuel would be
  2605. sufficient to warm the whole population of Iceland for a century;
  2606. this vast turbary measured in certain ravines had in many places a
  2607. depth of seventy feet, and presented layers of carbonized remains of
  2608. vegetation alternating with thinner layers of tufaceous pumice.
  2609. As a true nephew of the Professor Liedenbrock, and in spite of my
  2610. dismal prospects, I could not help observing with interest the
  2611. mineralogical curiosities which lay about me as in a vast museum, and
  2612. I constructed for myself a complete geological account of Iceland.
  2613. This most curious island has evidently been projected from the bottom
  2614. of the sea at a comparatively recent date. Possibly, it may still be
  2615. subject to gradual elevation. If this is the case, its origin may
  2616. well be attributed to subterranean fires. Therefore, in this case,
  2617. the theory of Sir Humphry Davy, Saknussemm's document, and my uncle's
  2618. theories would all go off in smoke. This hypothesis led me to examine
  2619. with more attention the appearance of the surface, and I soon arrived
  2620. at a conclusion as to the nature of the forces which presided at its
  2621. birth.
  2622. Iceland, which is entirely devoid of alluvial soil, is wholly
  2623. composed of volcanic tufa, that is to say, an agglomeration of porous
  2624. rocks and stones. Before the volcanoes broke out it consisted of trap
  2625. rocks slowly upraised to the level of the sea by the action of
  2626. central forces. The internal fires had not yet forced their way
  2627. through.
  2628. But at a later period a wide chasm formed diagonally from south-west
  2629. to north-east, through which was gradually forced out the trachyte
  2630. which was to form a mountain chain. No violence accompanied this
  2631. change; the matter thrown out was in vast quantities, and the liquid
  2632. material oozing out from the abysses of the earth slowly spread in
  2633. extensive plains or in hillocky masses. To this period belong the
  2634. felspar, syenites, and porphyries.
  2635. But with the help of this outflow the thickness of the crust of the
  2636. island increased materially, and therefore also its powers of
  2637. resistance. It may easily be conceived what vast quantities of
  2638. elastic gases, what masses of molten matter accumulated beneath its
  2639. solid surface whilst no exit was practicable after the cooling of the
  2640. trachytic crust. Therefore a time would come when the elastic and
  2641. explosive forces of the imprisoned gases would upheave this ponderous
  2642. cover and drive out for themselves openings through tall chimneys.
  2643. Hence then the volcano would distend and lift up the crust, and then
  2644. burst through a crater suddenly formed at the summit or thinnest part
  2645. of the volcano.
  2646. To the eruption succeeded other volcanic phenomena. Through the
  2647. outlets now made first escaped the ejected basalt of which the plain
  2648. we had just left presented such marvellous specimens. We were moving
  2649. over grey rocks of dense and massive formation, which in cooling had
  2650. formed into hexagonal prisms. Everywhere around us we saw truncated
  2651. cones, formerly so many fiery mouths.
  2652. After the exhaustion of the basalt, the volcano, the power of which
  2653. grew by the extinction of the lesser craters, supplied an egress to
  2654. lava, ashes, and scoriae, of which I could see lengthened screes
  2655. streaming down the sides of the mountain like flowing hair.
  2656. Such was the succession of phenomena which produced Iceland, all
  2657. arising from the action of internal fire; and to suppose that the
  2658. mass within did not still exist in a state of liquid incandescence
  2659. was absurd; and nothing could surpass the absurdity of fancying that
  2660. it was possible to reach the earth's centre.
  2661. So I felt a little comforted as we advanced to the assault of Sn�fell.
  2662. The way was growing more and more arduous, the ascent steeper and
  2663. steeper; the loose fragments of rock trembled beneath us, and the
  2664. utmost care was needed to avoid dangerous falls.
  2665. Hans went on as quietly as if he were on level ground; sometimes he
  2666. disappeared altogether behind the huge blocks, then a shrill whistle
  2667. would direct us on our way to him. Sometimes he would halt, pick up a
  2668. few bits of stone, build them up into a recognisable form, and thus
  2669. made landmarks to guide us in our way back. A very wise precaution in
  2670. itself, but, as things turned out, quite useless.
  2671. Three hours' fatiguing march had only brought us to the base of the
  2672. mountain. There Hans bid us come to a halt, and a hasty breakfast was
  2673. served out. My uncle swallowed two mouthfuls at a time to get on
  2674. faster. But, whether he liked it or not, this was a rest as well as a
  2675. breakfast hour and he had to wait till it pleased our guide to move
  2676. on, which came to pass in an hour. The three Icelanders, just as
  2677. taciturn as their comrade the hunter, never spoke, and ate their
  2678. breakfasts in silence.
  2679. We were now beginning to scale the steep sides of Sn�fell. Its snowy
  2680. summit, by an optical illusion not unfrequent in mountains, seemed
  2681. close to us, and yet how many weary hours it took to reach it! The
  2682. stones, adhering by no soil or fibrous roots of vegetation, rolled
  2683. away from under our feet, and rushed down the precipice below with
  2684. the swiftness of an avalanche.
  2685. At some places the flanks of the mountain formed an angle with the
  2686. horizon of at least 36 degrees; it was impossible to climb them, and
  2687. these stony cliffs had to be tacked round, not without great
  2688. difficulty. Then we helped each other with our sticks.
  2689. I must admit that my uncle kept as close to me as he could; he never
  2690. lost sight of me, and in many straits his arm furnished me with a
  2691. powerful support. He himself seemed to possess an instinct for
  2692. equilibrium, for he never stumbled. The Icelanders, though burdened
  2693. with our loads, climbed with the agility of mountaineers.
  2694. To judge by the distant appearance of the summit of Sn�fell, it would
  2695. have seemed too steep to ascend on our side. Fortunately, after an
  2696. hour of fatigue and athletic exercises, in the midst of the vast
  2697. surface of snow presented by the hollow between the two peaks, a kind
  2698. of staircase appeared unexpectedly which greatly facilitated our
  2699. ascent. It was formed by one of those torrents of stones flung up by
  2700. the eruptions, called 'sting' by the Icelanders. If this torrent had
  2701. not been arrested in its fall by the formation of the sides of the
  2702. mountain, it would have gone on to the sea and formed more islands.
  2703. Such as it was, it did us good service. The steepness increased, but
  2704. these stone steps allowed us to rise with facility, and even with
  2705. such rapidity that, having rested for a moment while my companions
  2706. continued their ascent, I perceived them already reduced by distance
  2707. to microscopic dimensions.
  2708. At seven we had ascended the two thousand steps of this grand
  2709. staircase, and we had attained a bulge in the mountain, a kind of bed
  2710. on which rested the cone proper of the crater.
  2711. Three thousand two hundred feet below us stretched the sea. We had
  2712. passed the limit of perpetual snow, which, on account of the moisture
  2713. of the climate, is at a greater elevation in Iceland than the high
  2714. latitude would give reason to suppose. The cold was excessively keen.
  2715. The wind was blowing violently. I was exhausted. The Professor saw
  2716. that my limbs were refusing to perform their office, and in spite of
  2717. his impatience he decided on stopping. He therefore spoke to the
  2718. hunter, who shook his head, saying:
  2719. "_Ofvanf�r._"
  2720. "It seems we must go higher," said my uncle.
  2721. Then he asked Hans for his reason.
  2722. "_Mistour,_" replied the guide.
  2723. "_Ja Mistour,_" said one of the Icelanders in a tone of alarm.
  2724. "What does that word mean?" I asked uneasily.
  2725. "Look!" said my uncle.
  2726. I looked down upon the plain. An immense column of pulverized pumice,
  2727. sand and dust was rising with a whirling circular motion like a
  2728. waterspout; the wind was lashing it on to that side of Sn�fell where
  2729. we were holding on; this dense veil, hung across the sun, threw a
  2730. deep shadow over the mountain. If that huge revolving pillar sloped
  2731. down, it would involve us in its whirling eddies. This phenomenon,
  2732. which is not unfrequent when the wind blows from the glaciers, is
  2733. called in Icelandic 'mistour.'
  2734. "_Hastigt! hastigt!_" cried our guide.
  2735. Without knowing Danish I understood at once that we must follow Hans
  2736. at the top of our speed. He began to circle round the cone of the
  2737. crater, but in a diagonal direction so as to facilitate our progress.
  2738. Presently the dust storm fell upon the mountain, which quivered under
  2739. the shock; the loose stones, caught with the irresistible blasts of
  2740. wind, flew about in a perfect hail as in an eruption. Happily we were
  2741. on the opposite side, and sheltered from all harm. But for the
  2742. precaution of our guide, our mangled bodies, torn and pounded into
  2743. fragments, would have been carried afar like the ruins hurled along
  2744. by some unknown meteor.
  2745. Yet Hans did not think it prudent to spend the night upon the sides
  2746. of the cone. We continued our zigzag climb. The fifteen hundred
  2747. remaining feet took us five hours to clear; the circuitous route, the
  2748. diagonal and the counter marches, must have measured at least three
  2749. leagues. I could stand it no longer. I was yielding to the effects of
  2750. hunger and cold. The rarefied air scarcely gave play to the action of
  2751. my lungs.
  2752. At last, at eleven in the sunlight night, the summit of Sn�fell was
  2753. reached, and before going in for shelter into the crater I had time
  2754. to observe the midnight sun, at his lowest point, gilding with his
  2755. pale rays the island that slept at my feet.
  2756. CHAPTER XVI.
  2757. BOLDLY DOWN THE CRATER
  2758. Supper was rapidly devoured, and the little company housed themselves
  2759. as best they could. The bed was hard, the shelter not very
  2760. substantial, and our position an anxious one, at five thousand feet
  2761. above the sea level. Yet I slept particularly well; it was one of the
  2762. best nights I had ever had, and I did not even dream.
  2763. Next morning we awoke half frozen by the sharp keen air, but with the
  2764. light of a splendid sun. I rose from my granite bed and went out to
  2765. enjoy the magnificent spectacle that lay unrolled before me.
  2766. I stood on the very summit of the southernmost of Sn�fell's peaks.
  2767. The range of the eye extended over the whole island. By an optical
  2768. law which obtains at all great heights, the shores seemed raised and
  2769. the centre depressed. It seemed as if one of Helbesmer's raised maps
  2770. lay at my feet. I could see deep valleys intersecting each other in
  2771. every direction, precipices like low walls, lakes reduced to ponds,
  2772. rivers abbreviated into streams. On my right were numberless glaciers
  2773. and innumerable peaks, some plumed with feathery clouds of smoke. The
  2774. undulating surface of these endless mountains, crested with sheets of
  2775. snow, reminded one of a stormy sea. If I looked westward, there the
  2776. ocean lay spread out in all its magnificence, like a mere
  2777. continuation of those flock-like summits. The eye could hardly tell
  2778. where the snowy ridges ended and the foaming waves began.
  2779. I was thus steeped in the marvellous ecstasy which all high summits
  2780. develop in the mind; and now without giddiness, for I was beginning
  2781. to be accustomed to these sublime aspects of nature. My dazzled eyes
  2782. were bathed in the bright flood of the solar rays. I was forgetting
  2783. where and who I was, to live the life of elves and sylphs, the
  2784. fanciful creation of Scandinavian superstitions. I felt intoxicated
  2785. with the sublime pleasure of lofty elevations without thinking of the
  2786. profound abysses into which I was shortly to be plunged. But I was
  2787. brought back to the realities of things by the arrival of Hans and
  2788. the Professor, who joined me on the summit.
  2789. My uncle pointed out to me in the far west a light steam or mist, a
  2790. semblance of land, which bounded the distant horizon of waters.
  2791. "Greenland!" said he.
  2792. "Greenland?" I cried.
  2793. "Yes; we are only thirty-five leagues from it; and during thaws the
  2794. white bears, borne by the ice fields from the north, are carried even
  2795. into Iceland. But never mind that. Here we are at the top of Sn�fell
  2796. and here are two peaks, one north and one south. Hans will tell us
  2797. the name of that on which we are now standing."
  2798. The question being put, Hans replied:
  2799. "Scartaris."
  2800. My uncle shot a triumphant glance at me.
  2801. "Now for the crater!" he cried.
  2802. The crater of Sn�fell resembled an inverted cone, the opening of which
  2803. might be half a league in diameter. Its depth appeared to be about
  2804. two thousand feet. Imagine the aspect of such a reservoir, brim full
  2805. and running over with liquid fire amid the rolling thunder. The
  2806. bottom of the funnel was about 250 feet in circuit, so that the
  2807. gentle slope allowed its lower brim to be reached without much
  2808. difficulty. Involuntarily I compared the whole crater to an enormous
  2809. erected mortar, and the comparison put me in a terrible fright.
  2810. "What madness," I thought, "to go down into a mortar, perhaps a
  2811. loaded mortar, to be shot up into the air at a moment's notice!"
  2812. But I did not try to back out of it. Hans with perfect coolness
  2813. resumed the lead, and I followed him without a word.
  2814. In order to facilitate the descent, Hans wound his way down the cone
  2815. by a spiral path. Our route lay amidst eruptive rocks, some of which,
  2816. shaken out of their loosened beds, rushed bounding down the abyss,
  2817. and in their fall awoke echoes remarkable for their loud and
  2818. well-defined sharpness.
  2819. In certain parts of the cone there were glaciers. Here Hans advanced
  2820. only with extreme precaution, sounding his way with his iron-pointed
  2821. pole, to discover any crevasses in it. At particularly dubious
  2822. passages we were obliged to connect ourselves with each other by a
  2823. long cord, in order that any man who missed his footing might be held
  2824. up by his companions. This solid formation was prudent, but did not
  2825. remove all danger.
  2826. Yet, notwithstanding the difficulties of the descent, down steeps
  2827. unknown to the guide, the journey was accomplished without accidents,
  2828. except the loss of a coil of rope, which escaped from the hands of an
  2829. Icelander, and took the shortest way to the bottom of the abyss.
  2830. At mid-day we arrived. I raised my head and saw straight above me the
  2831. upper aperture of the cone, framing a bit of sky of very small
  2832. circumference, but almost perfectly round. Just upon the edge
  2833. appeared the snowy peak of Saris, standing out sharp and clear
  2834. against endless space.
  2835. At the bottom of the crater were three chimneys, through which, in
  2836. its eruptions, Sn�fell had driven forth fire and lava from its
  2837. central furnace. Each of these chimneys was a hundred feet in
  2838. diameter. They gaped before us right in our path. I had not the
  2839. courage to look down either of them. But Professor Liedenbrock had
  2840. hastily surveyed all three; he was panting, running from one to the
  2841. other, gesticulating, and uttering incoherent expressions. Hans and
  2842. his comrades, seated upon loose lava rocks, looked at him with as much
  2843. wonder as they knew how to express, and perhaps taking him for an
  2844. escaped lunatic.
  2845. Suddenly my uncle uttered a cry. I thought his foot must have slipped
  2846. and that he had fallen down one of the holes. But, no; I saw him,
  2847. with arms outstretched and legs straddling wide apart, erect before a
  2848. granite rock that stood in the centre of the crater, just like a
  2849. pedestal made ready to receive a statue of Pluto. He stood like a man
  2850. stupefied, but the stupefaction soon gave way to delirious rapture.
  2851. "Axel, Axel," he cried. "Come, come!"
  2852. I ran. Hans and the Icelanders never stirred.
  2853. "Look!" cried the Professor.
  2854. And, sharing his astonishment, but I think not his joy, I read on the
  2855. western face of the block, in Runic characters, half mouldered away
  2856. with lapse of ages, this thrice-accursed name:
  2857. [At this point a Runic text appears]
  2858. "Arne Saknussemm!" replied my uncle. "Do you yet doubt?"
  2859. I made no answer; and I returned in silence to my lava seat in a
  2860. state of utter speechless consternation. Here was crushing evidence.
  2861. How long I remained plunged in agonizing reflections I cannot tell;
  2862. all that I know is, that on raising my head again, I saw only my
  2863. uncle and Hans at the bottom of the crater. The Icelanders had been
  2864. dismissed, and they were now descending the outer slopes of Sn�fell
  2865. to return to Stapi.
  2866. Hans slept peaceably at the foot of a rock, in a lava bed, where he
  2867. had found a suitable couch for himself; but my uncle was pacing
  2868. around the bottom of the crater like a wild beast in a cage. I had
  2869. neither the wish nor the strength to rise, and following the guide's
  2870. example I went off into an unhappy slumber, fancying I could hear
  2871. ominous noises or feel tremblings within the recesses of the mountain.
  2872. Thus the first night in the crater passed away.
  2873. The next morning, a grey, heavy, cloudy sky seemed to droop over the
  2874. summit of the cone. I did not know this first from the appearances of
  2875. nature, but I found it out by my uncle's impetuous wrath.
  2876. I soon found out the cause, and hope dawned again in my heart. For
  2877. this reason.
  2878. Of the three ways open before us, one had been taken by Saknussemm.
  2879. The indications of the learned Icelander hinted at in the cryptogram,
  2880. pointed to this fact that the shadow of Scartaris came to touch that
  2881. particular way during the latter days of the month of June.
  2882. That sharp peak might hence be considered as the gnomon of a vast sun
  2883. dial, the shadow projected from which on a certain day would point
  2884. out the road to the centre of the earth.
  2885. Now, no sun no shadow, and therefore no guide. Here was June 25. If
  2886. the sun was clouded for six days we must postpone our visit till next
  2887. year.
  2888. My limited powers of description would fail, were I to attempt a
  2889. picture of the Professor's angry impatience. The day wore on, and no
  2890. shadow came to lay itself along the bottom of the crater. Hans did
  2891. not move from the spot he had selected; yet he must be asking himself
  2892. what were we waiting for, if he asked himself anything at all. My
  2893. uncle spoke not a word to me. His gaze, ever directed upwards, was
  2894. lost in the grey and misty space beyond.
  2895. On the 26th nothing yet. Rain mingled with snow was falling all day
  2896. long. Hans built a hut of pieces of lava. I felt a malicious pleasure
  2897. in watching the thousand rills and cascades that came tumbling down
  2898. the sides of the cone, and the deafening continuous din awaked by
  2899. every stone against which they bounded.
  2900. My uncle's rage knew no bounds. It was enough to irritate a meeker
  2901. man than he; for it was foundering almost within the port.
  2902. But Heaven never sends unmixed grief, and for Professor Liedenbrock
  2903. there was a satisfaction in store proportioned to his desperate
  2904. anxieties.
  2905. The next day the sky was again overcast; but on the 29th of June, the
  2906. last day but one of the month, with the change of the moon came a
  2907. change of weather. The sun poured a flood of light down the crater.
  2908. Every hillock, every rock and stone, every projecting surface, had
  2909. its share of the beaming torrent, and threw its shadow on the ground.
  2910. Amongst them all, Scartaris laid down his sharp-pointed angular
  2911. shadow which began to move slowly in the opposite direction to that
  2912. of the radiant orb.
  2913. My uncle turned too, and followed it.
  2914. At noon, being at its least extent, it came and softly fell upon the
  2915. edge of the middle chimney.
  2916. "There it is! there it is!" shouted the Professor.
  2917. "Now for the centre of the globe!" he added in Danish.
  2918. I looked at Hans, to hear what he would say.
  2919. "_For�t!_" was his tranquil answer.
  2920. "Forward!" replied my uncle.
  2921. It was thirteen minutes past one.
  2922. CHAPTER XVII.
  2923. VERTICAL DESCENT
  2924. Now began our real journey. Hitherto our toil had overcome all
  2925. difficulties, now difficulties would spring up at every step.
  2926. I had not yet ventured to look down the bottomless pit into which I
  2927. was about to take a plunge. The supreme hour had come. I might now
  2928. either share in the enterprise or refuse to move forward. But I was
  2929. ashamed to recoil in the presence of the hunter. Hans accepted the
  2930. enterprise with such calmness, such indifference, such perfect
  2931. disregard of any possible danger that I blushed at the idea of being
  2932. less brave than he. If I had been alone I might have once more tried
  2933. the effect of argument; but in the presence of the guide I held my
  2934. peace; my heart flew back to my sweet Virlandaise, and I approached
  2935. the central chimney.
  2936. I have already mentioned that it was a hundred feet in diameter, and
  2937. three hundred feet round. I bent over a projecting rock and gazed
  2938. down. My hair stood on end with terror. The bewildering feeling of
  2939. vacuity laid hold upon me. I felt my centre of gravity shifting its
  2940. place, and giddiness mounting into my brain like drunkenness. There
  2941. is nothing more treacherous than this attraction down deep abysses. I
  2942. was just about to drop down, when a hand laid hold of me. It was that
  2943. of Hans. I suppose I had not taken as many lessons on gulf
  2944. exploration as I ought to have done in the Frelsers Kirk at
  2945. Copenhagen.
  2946. But, however short was my examination of this well, I had taken some
  2947. account of its conformation. Its almost perpendicular walls were
  2948. bristling with innumerable projections which would facilitate the
  2949. descent. But if there was no want of steps, still there was no rail.
  2950. A rope fastened to the edge of the aperture might have helped us
  2951. down. But how were we to unfasten it, when arrived at the other end?
  2952. My uncle employed a very simple expedient to obviate this difficulty.
  2953. He uncoiled a cord of the thickness of a finger, and four hundred
  2954. feet long; first he dropped half of it down, then he passed it round
  2955. a lava block that projected conveniently, and threw the other half
  2956. down the chimney. Each of us could then descend by holding with the
  2957. hand both halves of the rope, which would not be able to unroll
  2958. itself from its hold; when two hundred feet down, it would be easy to
  2959. get possession of the whole of the rope by letting one end go and
  2960. pulling down by the other. Then the exercise would go on again _ad
  2961. infinitum_.
  2962. "Now," said my uncle, after having completed these preparations, "now
  2963. let us look to our loads. I will divide them into three lots; each of
  2964. us will strap one upon his back. I mean only fragile articles."
  2965. Of course, we were not included under that head.
  2966. "Hans," said he, "will take charge of the tools and a portion of the
  2967. provisions; you, Axel, will take another third of the provisions, and
  2968. the arms; and I will take the rest of the provisions and the delicate
  2969. instruments."
  2970. "But," said I, "the clothes, and that mass of ladders and ropes, what
  2971. is to become of them?"
  2972. "They will go down by themselves."
  2973. "How so?" I asked.
  2974. "You will see presently."
  2975. My uncle was always willing to employ magnificent resources. Obeying
  2976. orders, Hans tied all the non-fragile articles in one bundle, corded
  2977. them firmly, and sent them bodily down the gulf before us.
  2978. I listened to the dull thuds of the descending bale. My uncle,
  2979. leaning over the abyss, followed the descent of the luggage with a
  2980. satisfied nod, and only rose erect when he had quite lost sight of it.
  2981. "Very well, now it is our turn."
  2982. Now I ask any sensible man if it was possible to hear those words
  2983. without a shudder.
  2984. The Professor fastened his package of instruments upon his shoulders;
  2985. Hans took the tools; I took the arms: and the descent commenced in
  2986. the following order; Hans, my uncle, and myself. It was effected in
  2987. profound silence, broken only by the descent of loosened stones down
  2988. the dark gulf.
  2989. I dropped as it were, frantically clutching the double cord with one
  2990. hand and buttressing myself from the wall with the other by means of
  2991. my stick. One idea overpowered me almost, fear lest the rock should
  2992. give way from which I was hanging. This cord seemed a fragile thing
  2993. for three persons to be suspended from. I made as little use of it as
  2994. possible, performing wonderful feats of equilibrium upon the lava
  2995. projections which my foot seemed to catch hold of like a hand.
  2996. When one of these slippery steps shook under the heavier form of
  2997. Hans, he said in his tranquil voice:
  2998. "_Gif akt!_"
  2999. "Attention!" repeated my uncle.
  3000. In half an hour we were standing upon the surface of a rock jammed in
  3001. across the chimney from one side to the other.
  3002. Hans pulled the rope by one of its ends, the other rose in the air;
  3003. after passing the higher rock it came down again, bringing with it a
  3004. rather dangerous shower of bits of stone and lava.
  3005. Leaning over the edge of our narrow standing ground, I observed that
  3006. the bottom of the hole was still invisible.
  3007. The same manoeuvre was repeated with the cord, and half an hour after
  3008. we had descended another two hundred feet.
  3009. I don't suppose the maddest geologist under such circumstances would
  3010. have studied the nature of the rocks that we were passing. I am sure
  3011. I did trouble my head about them. Pliocene, miocene, eocene,
  3012. cretaceous, jurassic, triassic, permian, carboniferous, devonian,
  3013. silurian, or primitive was all one to me. But the Professor, no
  3014. doubt, was pursuing his observations or taking notes, for in one of
  3015. our halts he said to me:
  3016. "The farther I go the more confidence I feel. The order of these
  3017. volcanic formations affords the strongest confirmation to the
  3018. theories of Davy. We are now among the primitive rocks, upon which
  3019. the chemical operations took place which are produced by the contact
  3020. of elementary bases of metals with water. I repudiate the notion of
  3021. central heat altogether. We shall see further proof of that very
  3022. soon."
  3023. No variation, always the same conclusion. Of course, I was not
  3024. inclined to argue. My silence was taken for consent and the descent
  3025. went on.
  3026. Another three hours, and I saw no bottom to the chimney yet. When I
  3027. lifted my head I perceived the gradual contraction of its aperture.
  3028. Its walls, by a gentle incline, were drawing closer to each other,
  3029. and it was beginning to grow darker.
  3030. Still we kept descending. It seemed to me that the falling stones
  3031. were meeting with an earlier resistance, and that the concussion gave
  3032. a more abrupt and deadened sound.
  3033. As I had taken care to keep an exact account of our manoeuvres with
  3034. the rope, which I knew that we had repeated fourteen times, each
  3035. descent occupying half an hour, the conclusion was easy that we had
  3036. been seven hours, plus fourteen quarters of rest, making ten hours
  3037. and a half. We had started at one, it must therefore now be eleven
  3038. o'clock; and the depth to which we had descended was fourteen times
  3039. 200 feet, or 2,800 feet.
  3040. At this moment I heard the voice of Hans.
  3041. "Halt!" he cried.
  3042. I stopped short just as I was going to place my feet upon my uncle's
  3043. head.
  3044. "We are there," he cried.
  3045. "Where?" said I, stepping near to him.
  3046. "At the bottom of the perpendicular chimney," he answered.
  3047. "Is there no way farther?"
  3048. "Yes; there is a sort of passage which inclines to the right. We will
  3049. see about that to-morrow. Let us have our supper, and go to sleep."
  3050. The darkness was not yet complete. The provision case was opened; we
  3051. refreshed ourselves, and went to sleep as well as we could upon a bed
  3052. of stones and lava fragments.
  3053. When lying on my back, I opened my eyes and saw a bright sparkling
  3054. point of light at the extremity of the gigantic tube 3,000 feet long,
  3055. now a vast telescope.
  3056. It was a star which, seen from this depth, had lost all
  3057. scintillation, and which by my computation should be 46; _Ursa
  3058. minor._ Then I fell fast asleep.
  3059. CHAPTER XVIII.
  3060. THE WONDERS OF TERRESTRIAL DEPTHS
  3061. At eight in the morning a ray of daylight came to wake us up. The
  3062. thousand shining surfaces of lava on the walls received it on its
  3063. passage, and scattered it like a shower of sparks.
  3064. There was light enough to distinguish surrounding objects.
  3065. "Well, Axel, what do you say to it?" cried my uncle, rubbing his
  3066. hands. "Did you ever spend a quieter night in our little house at
  3067. K�nigsberg? No noise of cart wheels, no cries of basket women, no
  3068. boatmen shouting!"
  3069. "No doubt it is very quiet at the bottom of this well, but there is
  3070. something alarming in the quietness itself."
  3071. "Now come!" my uncle cried; "if you are frightened already, what will
  3072. you be by and by? We have not gone a single inch yet into the bowels
  3073. of the earth."
  3074. "What do you mean?"
  3075. "I mean that we have only reached the level of the island, long
  3076. vertical tube, which terminates at the mouth of the crater, has its
  3077. lower end only at the level of the sea."
  3078. "Are you sure of that?"
  3079. "Quite sure. Consult the barometer."
  3080. In fact, the mercury, which had risen in the instrument as fast as we
  3081. descended, had stopped at twenty-nine inches.
  3082. "You see," said the Professor, "we have now only the pressure of our
  3083. atmosphere, and I shall be glad when the aneroid takes the place of
  3084. the barometer."
  3085. And in truth this instrument would become useless as soon as the
  3086. weight of the atmosphere should exceed the pressure ascertained at
  3087. the level of the sea.
  3088. "But," I said, "is there not reason to fear that this ever-increasing
  3089. pressure will become at last very painful to bear?"
  3090. "No; we shall descend at a slow rate, and our lungs will become
  3091. inured to a denser atmosphere. Aeronauts find the want of air as they
  3092. rise to high elevations, but we shall perhaps have too much: of the
  3093. two, this is what I should prefer. Don't let us lose a moment. Where
  3094. is the bundle we sent down before us?"
  3095. I then remembered that we had searched for it in vain the evening
  3096. before. My uncle questioned Hans, who, after having examined
  3097. attentively with the eye of a huntsman, replied:
  3098. "_Der huppe!_"
  3099. "Up there."
  3100. And so it was. The bundle had been caught by a projection a hundred
  3101. feet above us. Immediately the Icelander climbed up like a cat, and
  3102. in a few minutes the package was in our possession.
  3103. "Now," said my uncle, "let us breakfast; but we must lay in a good
  3104. stock, for we don't know how long we may have to go on."
  3105. The biscuit and extract of meat were washed down with a draught of
  3106. water mingled with a little gin.
  3107. Breakfast over, my uncle drew from his pocket a small notebook,
  3108. intended for scientific observations. He consulted his instruments,
  3109. and recorded:
  3110. "Monday, July 1.
  3111. "Chronometer, 8.17 a.m.; barometer, 297 in.; thermometer, 6� (43�
  3112. F.). Direction, E.S.E."
  3113. This last observation applied to the dark gallery, and was indicated
  3114. by the compass.
  3115. "Now, Axel," cried the Professor with enthusiasm, "now we are really
  3116. going into the interior of the earth. At this precise moment the
  3117. journey commences."
  3118. So saying, my uncle took in one hand Ruhmkorff's apparatus, which was
  3119. hanging from his neck; and with the other he formed an electric
  3120. communication with the coil in the lantern, and a sufficiently bright
  3121. light dispersed the darkness of the passage.
  3122. Hans carried the other apparatus, which was also put into action.
  3123. This ingenious application of electricity would enable us to go on
  3124. for a long time by creating an artificial light even in the midst of
  3125. the most inflammable gases.
  3126. "Now, march!" cried my uncle.
  3127. Each shouldered his package. Hans drove before him the load of cords
  3128. and clothes; and, myself walking last, we entered the gallery.
  3129. At the moment of becoming engulfed in this dark gallery, I raised my
  3130. head, and saw for the last time through the length of that vast tube
  3131. the sky of Iceland, which I was never to behold again.
  3132. The lava, in the last eruption of 1229, had forced a passage through
  3133. this tunnel. It still lined the walls with a thick and glistening
  3134. coat. The electric light was here intensified a hundredfold by
  3135. reflection.
  3136. The only difficulty in proceeding lay in not sliding too fast down an
  3137. incline of about forty-five degrees; happily certain asperities and a
  3138. few blisterings here and there formed steps, and we descended,
  3139. letting our baggage slip before us from the end of a long rope.
  3140. But that which formed steps under our feet became stalactites
  3141. overhead. The lava, which was porous in many places, had formed a
  3142. surface covered with small rounded blisters; crystals of opaque
  3143. quartz, set with limpid tears of glass, and hanging like clustered
  3144. chandeliers from the vaulted roof, seemed as it were to kindle and
  3145. form a sudden illumination as we passed on our way. It seemed as if
  3146. the genii of the depths were lighting up their palace to receive
  3147. their terrestrial guests.
  3148. "It is magnificent!" I cried spontaneously. "My uncle, what a sight!
  3149. Don't you admire those blending hues of lava, passing from reddish
  3150. brown to bright yellow by imperceptible shades? And these crystals
  3151. are just like globes of light."
  3152. "Ali, you think so, do you, Axel, my boy? Well, you will see greater
  3153. splendours than these, I hope. Now let us march: march!"
  3154. He had better have said slide, for we did nothing but drop down the
  3155. steep inclines. It was the facifs _descensus Averni_ of Virgil. The
  3156. compass, which I consulted frequently, gave our direction as
  3157. south-east with inflexible steadiness. This lava stream deviated
  3158. neither to the right nor to the left.
  3159. Yet there was no sensible increase of temperature. This justified
  3160. Davy's theory, and more than once I consulted the thermometer with
  3161. surprise. Two hours after our departure it only marked 10� (50�
  3162. Fahr.), an increase of only 4�. This gave reason for believing that
  3163. our descent was more horizontal than vertical. As for the exact depth
  3164. reached, it was very easy to ascertain that; the Professor measured
  3165. accurately the angles of deviation and inclination on the road, but
  3166. he kept the results to himself.
  3167. About eight in the evening he signalled to stop. Hans sat down at
  3168. once. The lamps were hung upon a projection in the lava; we were in a
  3169. sort of cavern where there was plenty of air. Certain puffs of air
  3170. reached us. What atmospheric disturbance was the cause of them? I
  3171. could not answer that question at the moment. Hunger and fatigue made
  3172. me incapable of reasoning. A descent of seven hours consecutively is
  3173. not made without considerable expenditure of strength. I was
  3174. exhausted. The order to 'halt' therefore gave me pleasure. Hans laid
  3175. our provisions upon a block of lava, and we ate with a good appetite.
  3176. But one thing troubled me, our supply of water was half consumed. My
  3177. uncle reckoned upon a fresh supply from subterranean sources, but
  3178. hitherto we had met with none. I could not help drawing his attention
  3179. to this circumstance.
  3180. "Are you surprised at this want of springs?" he said.
  3181. "More than that, I am anxious about it; we have only water enough for
  3182. five days."
  3183. "Don't be uneasy, Axel, we shall find more than we want."
  3184. "When?"
  3185. "When we have left this bed of lava behind us. How could springs
  3186. break through such walls as these?"
  3187. "But perhaps this passage runs to a very great depth. It seems to me
  3188. that we have made no great progress vertically."
  3189. "Why do you suppose that?"
  3190. "Because if we had gone deep into the crust of earth, we should have
  3191. encountered greater heat."
  3192. "According to your system," said my uncle. "But what does the
  3193. thermometer say?"
  3194. "Hardly fifteen degrees (59� Fahr), nine degrees only since our
  3195. departure."
  3196. "Well, what is your conclusion?"
  3197. "This is my conclusion. According to exact observations, the increase
  3198. of temperature in the interior of the globe advances at the rate of
  3199. one degree (1 4/5� Fahr.) for every hundred feet. But certain local
  3200. conditions may modify this rate. Thus at Yakoutsk in Siberia the
  3201. increase of a degree is ascertained to be reached every 36 feet. This
  3202. difference depends upon the heat-conducting power of the rocks.
  3203. Moreover, in the neighbourhood of an extinct volcano, through gneiss,
  3204. it has been observed that the increase of a degree is only attained
  3205. at every 125 feet. Let us therefore assume this last hypothesis as
  3206. the most suitable to our situation, and calculate."
  3207. "Well, do calculate, my boy."
  3208. "Nothing is easier," said I, putting down figures in my note book.
  3209. "Nine times a hundred and twenty-five feet gives a depth of eleven
  3210. hundred and twenty-five feet."
  3211. "Very accurate indeed."
  3212. "Well?"
  3213. "By my observation we are at 10,000 feet below the level of the sea."
  3214. "Is that possible?"
  3215. "Yes, or figures are of no use."
  3216. The Professor's calculations were quite correct. We had already
  3217. attained a depth of six thousand feet beyond that hitherto reached by
  3218. the foot of man, such as the mines of Kitz Bahl in Tyrol, and those
  3219. of Wuttembourg in Bohemia.
  3220. The temperature, which ought to have been 81� (178� Fahr.) was
  3221. scarcely 15� (59� Fahr.). Here was cause for reflection.
  3222. CHAPTER XIX.
  3223. GEOLOGICAL STUDIES IN SITU
  3224. Next day, Tuesday, June 30, at 6 a.m., the descent began again.
  3225. We were still following the gallery of lava, a real natural
  3226. staircase, and as gently sloping as those inclined planes which in
  3227. some old houses are still found instead of flights of steps. And so
  3228. we went on until 12.17, the, precise moment when we overtook Hans,
  3229. who had stopped.
  3230. "Ah! here we are," exclaimed my uncle, "at the very end of the
  3231. chimney."
  3232. I looked around me. We were standing at the intersection of two
  3233. roads, both dark and narrow. Which were we to take? This was a
  3234. difficulty.
  3235. Still my uncle refused to admit an appearance of hesitation, either
  3236. before me or the guide; he pointed out the Eastern tunnel, and we
  3237. were soon all three in it.
  3238. Besides there would have been interminable hesitation before this
  3239. choice of roads; for since there was no indication whatever to guide
  3240. our choice, we were obliged to trust to chance.
  3241. The slope of this gallery was scarcely perceptible, and its sections
  3242. very unequal. Sometimes we passed a series of arches succeeding each
  3243. other like the majestic arcades of a gothic cathedral. Here the
  3244. architects of the middle ages might have found studies for every form
  3245. of the sacred art which sprang from the development of the pointed
  3246. arch. A mile farther we had to bow our heads under corniced elliptic
  3247. arches in the romanesque style; and massive pillars standing out from
  3248. the wall bent under the spring of the vault that rested heavily upon
  3249. them. In other places this magnificence gave way to narrow channels
  3250. between low structures which looked like beaver's huts, and we had to
  3251. creep along through extremely narrow passages.
  3252. The heat was perfectly bearable. Involuntarily I began to think of
  3253. its heat when the lava thrown out by Sn�fell was boiling and working
  3254. through this now silent road. I imagined the torrents of fire hurled
  3255. back at every angle in the gallery, and the accumulation of intensely
  3256. heated vapours in the midst of this confined channel.
  3257. I only hope, thought I, that this so-called extinct volcano won't
  3258. take a fancy in his old age to begin his sports again!
  3259. I abstained from communicating these fears to Professor Liedenbrock. He
  3260. would never have understood them at all. He had but one idea--forward!
  3261. He walked, he slid, he scrambled, he tumbled, with a persistency which
  3262. one could not but admire.
  3263. By six in the evening, after a not very fatiguing walk, we had gone
  3264. two leagues south, but scarcely a quarter of a mile down.
  3265. My uncle said it was time to go to sleep. We ate without talking, and
  3266. went to sleep without reflection.
  3267. Our arrangements for the night were very simple; a railway rug each,
  3268. into which we rolled ourselves, was our sole covering. We had neither
  3269. cold nor intrusive visits to fear. Travellers who penetrate into the
  3270. wilds of central Africa, and into the pathless forests of the New
  3271. World, are obliged to watch over each other by night. But we enjoyed
  3272. absolute safety and utter seclusion; no savages or wild beasts
  3273. infested these silent depths.
  3274. Next morning, we awoke fresh and in good spirits. The road was
  3275. resumed. As the day before, we followed the path of the lava. It was
  3276. impossible to tell what rocks we were passing: the tunnel, instead of
  3277. tending lower, approached more and more nearly to a horizontal
  3278. direction, I even fancied a slight rise. But about ten this upward
  3279. tendency became so evident, and therefore so fatiguing, that I was
  3280. obliged to slacken my pace.
  3281. "Well, Axel?" demanded the Professor impatiently.
  3282. "Well, I cannot stand it any longer," I replied.
  3283. "What! after three hours' walk over such easy ground."
  3284. "It may be easy, but it is tiring all the same."
  3285. "What, when we have nothing to do but keep going down!"
  3286. "Going up, if you please."
  3287. "Going up!" said my uncle, with a shrug.
  3288. "No doubt, for the last half-hour the inclines have gone the other
  3289. way, and at this rate we shall soon arrive upon the level soil of
  3290. Iceland."
  3291. The Professor nodded slowly and uneasily like a man that declines to
  3292. be convinced. I tried to resume the conversation. He answered not a
  3293. word, and gave the signal for a start. I saw that his silence was
  3294. nothing but ill-humour.
  3295. Still I had courageously shouldered my burden again, and was rapidly
  3296. following Hans, whom my uncle preceded. I was anxious not to be left
  3297. behind. My greatest care was not to lose sight of my companions. I
  3298. shuddered at the thought of being lost in the mazes of this vast
  3299. subterranean labyrinth.
  3300. Besides, if the ascending road did become steeper, I was comforted
  3301. with the thought that it was bringing us nearer to the surface. There
  3302. was hope in this. Every step confirmed me in it, and I was rejoicing
  3303. at the thought of meeting my little Gr�uben again.
  3304. By mid-day there was a change in the appearance of this wall of the
  3305. gallery. I noticed it by a diminution of the amount of light
  3306. reflected from the sides; solid rock was appearing in the place of
  3307. the lava coating. The mass was composed of inclined and sometimes
  3308. vertical strata. We were passing through rocks of the transition or
  3309. silurian [1] system.
  3310. "It is evident," I cried, "the marine deposits formed in the second
  3311. period, these shales, limestones, and sandstones. We are turning away
  3312. from the primary granite. We are just as if we were people of Hamburg
  3313. going to L�beck by way of Hanover!"
  3314. I had better have kept my observations to myself. But my geological
  3315. instinct was stronger than my prudence, and uncle Liedenbrock heard
  3316. my exclamation.
  3317. "What's that you are saying?" he asked.
  3318. "See," I said, pointing to the varied series of sandstones and
  3319. limestones, and the first indication of slate.
  3320. "Well?"
  3321. "We are at the period when the first plants and animals appeared."
  3322. "Do you think so?"
  3323. "Look close, and examine."
  3324. I obliged the Professor to move his lamp over the walls of the
  3325. gallery. I expected some signs of astonishment; but he spoke not a
  3326. word, and went on.
  3327. Had he understood me or not? Did he refuse to admit, out of self-love
  3328. as an uncle and a philosopher, that he had mistaken his way when he
  3329. chose the eastern tunnel? or was he determined to examine this
  3330. passage to its farthest extremity? It was evident that we had left
  3331. the lava path, and that this road could not possibly lead to the
  3332. extinct furnace of Sn�fell.
  3333. Yet I asked myself if I was not depending too much on this change in
  3334. the rock. Might I not myself be mistaken? Were we really crossing the
  3335. layers of rock which overlie the granite foundation?
  3336. [1]The name given by Sir Roderick Murchison to a vast series of
  3337. fossiliferous strata, which lies between the non-fossiliferous slaty
  3338. schists below and the old red sandstone above. The system is well
  3339. developed in the region of Shropshire, etc., once inhabited by the
  3340. Silures under Caractacus, or Caradoc. (Tr.)
  3341. If I am right, I thought, I must soon find some fossil remains of
  3342. primitive life; and then we must yield to evidence. I will look.
  3343. I had not gone a hundred paces before incontestable proofs presented
  3344. themselves. It could not be otherwise, for in the Silurian age the
  3345. seas contained at least fifteen hundred vegetable and animal species.
  3346. My feet, which had become accustomed to the indurated lava floor,
  3347. suddenly rested upon a dust composed of the _debris_ of plants and
  3348. shells. In the walls were distinct impressions of fucoids and
  3349. lycopodites.
  3350. Professor Liedenbrock could not be mistaken, I thought, and yet he
  3351. pushed on, with, I suppose, his eyes resolutely shut.
  3352. This was only invincible obstinacy. I could hold out no longer. I
  3353. picked up a perfectly formed shell, which had belonged to an animal
  3354. not unlike the woodlouse: then, joining my uncle, I said:
  3355. "Look at this!"
  3356. "Very well," said he quietly, "it is the shell of a crustacean, of an
  3357. extinct species called a trilobite. Nothing more."
  3358. "But don't you conclude--?"
  3359. "Just what you conclude yourself. Yes; I do, perfectly. We have left
  3360. the granite and the lava. It is possible that I may be mistaken. But
  3361. I cannot be sure of that until I have reached the very end of this
  3362. gallery."
  3363. "You are right in doing this, my uncle, and I should quite approve of
  3364. your determination, if there were not a danger threatening us nearer
  3365. and nearer."
  3366. "What danger?"
  3367. "The want of water."
  3368. "Well, Axel, we will put ourselves upon rations."
  3369. CHAPTER XX.
  3370. THE FIRST SIGNS OF DISTRESS
  3371. In fact, we had to ration ourselves. Our provision of water could not
  3372. last more than three days. I found that out for certain when
  3373. supper-time came. And, to our sorrow, we had little reason to expect
  3374. to find a spring in these transition beds.
  3375. The whole of the next day the gallery opened before us its endless
  3376. arcades. We moved on almost without a word. Hans' silence seemed to
  3377. be infecting us.
  3378. The road was now not ascending, at least not perceptibly. Sometimes,
  3379. even, it seemed to have a slight fall. But this tendency, which was
  3380. very trifling, could not do anything to reassure the Professor; for
  3381. there was no change in the beds, and the transitional characteristics
  3382. became more and more decided.
  3383. The electric light was reflected in sparkling splendour from the
  3384. schist, limestone, and old red sandstone of the walls. It might have
  3385. been thought that we were passing through a section of Wales, of
  3386. which an ancient people gave its name to this system. Specimens of
  3387. magnificent marbles clothed the walls, some of a greyish agate
  3388. fantastically veined with white, others of rich crimson or yellow
  3389. dashed with splotches of red; then came dark cherry-coloured marbles
  3390. relieved by the lighter tints of limestone.
  3391. The greater part of these bore impressions of primitive organisms.
  3392. Creation had evidently advanced since the day before. Instead of
  3393. rudimentary trilobites, I noticed remains of a more perfect order of
  3394. beings, amongst others ganoid fishes and some of those sauroids in
  3395. which palaeontologists have discovered the earliest reptile forms.
  3396. The Devonian seas were peopled by animals of these species, and
  3397. deposited them by thousands in the rocks of the newer formation.
  3398. It was evident that we were ascending that scale of animal life in
  3399. which man fills the highest place. But Professor Liedenbrock seemed
  3400. not to notice it.
  3401. He was awaiting one of two events, either the appearance of a
  3402. vertical well opening before his feet, down which our descent might
  3403. be resumed, or that of some obstacle which should effectually turn us
  3404. back on our own footsteps. But evening came and neither wish was
  3405. gratified.
  3406. On Friday, after a night during which I felt pangs of thirst, our
  3407. little troop again plunged into the winding passages of the gallery.
  3408. After ten hours' walking I observed a singular deadening of the
  3409. reflection of our lamps from the side walls. The marble, the schist,
  3410. the limestone, and the sandstone were giving way to a dark and
  3411. lustreless lining. At one moment, the tunnel becoming very narrow, I
  3412. leaned against the wall.
  3413. When I removed my hand it was black. I looked nearer, and found we
  3414. were in a coal formation.
  3415. "A coal mine!" I cried.
  3416. "A mine without miners," my uncle replied.
  3417. "Who knows?" I asked.
  3418. "I know," the Professor pronounced decidedly, "I am certain that this
  3419. gallery driven through beds of coal was never pierced by the hand of
  3420. man. But whether it be the hand of nature or not does not matter.
  3421. Supper time is come; let us sup."
  3422. Hans prepared some food. I scarcely ate, and I swallowed down the few
  3423. drops of water rationed out to me. One flask half full was all we had
  3424. left to slake the thirst of three men.
  3425. After their meal my two companions laid themselves down upon their
  3426. rugs, and found in sleep a solace for their fatigue. But I could not
  3427. sleep, and I counted every hour until morning.
  3428. On Saturday, at six, we started afresh. In twenty minutes we reached
  3429. a vast open space; I then knew that the hand of man had not hollowed
  3430. out this mine; the vaults would have been shored up, and, as it was,
  3431. they seemed to be held up by a miracle of equilibrium.
  3432. This cavern was about a hundred feet wide and a hundred and fifty in
  3433. height. A large mass had been rent asunder by a subterranean
  3434. disturbance. Yielding to some vast power from below it had broken
  3435. asunder, leaving this great hollow into which human beings were now
  3436. penetrating for the first time.
  3437. The whole history of the carboniferous period was written upon these
  3438. gloomy walls, and a geologist might with ease trace all its diverse
  3439. phases. The beds of coal were separated by strata of sandstone or
  3440. compact clays, and appeared crushed under the weight of overlying
  3441. strata.
  3442. At the age of the world which preceded the secondary period, the
  3443. earth was clothed with immense vegetable forms, the product of the
  3444. double influence of tropical heat and constant moisture; a vapoury
  3445. atmosphere surrounded the earth, still veiling the direct rays of the
  3446. sun.
  3447. Thence arises the conclusion that the high temperature then existing
  3448. was due to some other source than the heat of the sun. Perhaps even
  3449. the orb of day may not have been ready yet to play the splendid part
  3450. he now acts. There were no 'climates' as yet, and a torrid heat,
  3451. equal from pole to equator, was spread over the whole surface of the
  3452. globe. Whence this heat? Was it from the interior of the earth?
  3453. Notwithstanding the theories of Professor Liedenbrock, a violent heat
  3454. did at that time brood within the body of the spheroid. Its action
  3455. was felt to the very last coats of the terrestrial crust; the plants,
  3456. unacquainted with the beneficent influences of the sun, yielded
  3457. neither flowers nor scent. But their roots drew vigorous life from
  3458. the burning soil of the early days of this planet.
  3459. There were but few trees. Herbaceous plants alone existed. There were
  3460. tall grasses, ferns, lycopods, besides sigillaria, asterophyllites,
  3461. now scarce plants, but then the species might be counted by thousands.
  3462. The coal measures owe their origin to this period of profuse
  3463. vegetation. The yet elastic and yielding crust of the earth obeyed
  3464. the fluid forces beneath. Thence innumerable fissures and
  3465. depressions. The plants, sunk underneath the waters, formed by
  3466. degrees into vast accumulated masses.
  3467. Then came the chemical action of nature; in the depths of the seas
  3468. the vegetable accumulations first became peat; then, acted upon by
  3469. generated gases and the heat of fermentation, they underwent a
  3470. process of complete mineralization.
  3471. Thus were formed those immense coalfields, which nevertheless, are
  3472. not inexhaustible, and which three centuries at the present
  3473. accelerated rate of consumption will exhaust unless the industrial
  3474. world will devise a remedy.
  3475. These reflections came into my mind whilst I was contemplating the
  3476. mineral wealth stored up in this portion of the globe. These no
  3477. doubt, I thought, will never be discovered; the working of such deep
  3478. mines would involve too large an outlay, and where would be the use
  3479. as long as coal is yet spread far and wide near the surface? Such as
  3480. my eyes behold these virgin stores, such they will be when this world
  3481. comes to an end.
  3482. But still we marched on, and I alone was forgetting the length of the
  3483. way by losing myself in the midst of geological contemplations. The
  3484. temperature remained what it had been during our passage through the
  3485. lava and schists. Only my sense of smell was forcibly affected by an
  3486. odour of protocarburet of hydrogen. I immediately recognised in this
  3487. gallery the presence of a considerable quantity of the dangerous gas
  3488. called by miners firedamp, the explosion of which has often
  3489. occasioned such dreadful catastrophes.
  3490. Happily, our light was from Ruhmkorff's ingenious apparatus. If
  3491. unfortunately we had explored this gallery with torches, a terrible
  3492. explosion would have put an end to travelling and travellers at one
  3493. stroke.
  3494. This excursion through the coal mine lasted till night. My uncle
  3495. scarcely could restrain his impatience at the horizontal road. The
  3496. darkness, always deep twenty yards before us, prevented us from
  3497. estimating the length of the gallery; and I was beginning to think it
  3498. must be endless, when suddenly at six o'clock a wall very
  3499. unexpectedly stood before us. Right or left, top or bottom, there was
  3500. no road farther; we were at the end of a blind alley. "Very well,
  3501. it's all right!" cried my uncle, "now, at any rate, we shall know
  3502. what we are about. We are not in Saknussemm's road, and all we have
  3503. to do is to go back. Let us take a night's rest, and in three days we
  3504. shall get to the fork in the road." "Yes," said I, "if we have any
  3505. strength left." "Why not?" "Because to-morrow we shall have no
  3506. water." "Nor courage either?" asked my uncle severely. I dared make
  3507. no answer.
  3508. CHAPTER XXI.
  3509. COMPASSION FUSES THE PROFESSOR'S HEART
  3510. Next day we started early. We had to hasten forward. It was a three
  3511. days' march to the cross roads.
  3512. I will not speak of the sufferings we endured in our return. My uncle
  3513. bore them with the angry impatience of a man obliged to own his
  3514. weakness; Hans with the resignation of his passive nature; I, I
  3515. confess, with complaints and expressions of despair. I had no spirit
  3516. to oppose this ill fortune.
  3517. As I had foretold, the water failed entirely by the end of the first
  3518. day's retrograde march. Our fluid aliment was now nothing but gin;
  3519. but this infernal fluid burned my throat, and I could not even endure
  3520. the sight of it. I found the temperature and the air stifling.
  3521. Fatigue paralysed my limbs. More than once I dropped down motionless.
  3522. Then there was a halt; and my uncle and the Icelander did their best
  3523. to restore me. But I saw that the former was struggling painfully
  3524. against excessive fatigue and the tortures of thirst.
  3525. At last, on Tuesday, July 8, we arrived on our hands and knees, and
  3526. half dead, at the junction of the two roads. There I dropped like a
  3527. lifeless lump, extended on the lava soil. It was ten in the morning.
  3528. Hans and my uncle, clinging to the wall, tried to nibble a few bits
  3529. of biscuit. Long moans escaped from my swollen lips.
  3530. After some time my uncle approached me and raised me in his arms.
  3531. "Poor boy!" said he, in genuine tones of compassion.
  3532. I was touched with these words, not being accustomed to see the
  3533. excitable Professor in a softened mood. I grasped his trembling hands
  3534. in mine. He let me hold them and looked at me. His eyes were
  3535. moistened.
  3536. Then I saw him take the flask that was hanging at his side. To my
  3537. amazement he placed it on my lips.
  3538. "Drink!" said he.
  3539. Had I heard him? Was my uncle beside himself? I stared at, him
  3540. stupidly, and felt as if I could not understand him.
  3541. "Drink!" he said again.
  3542. And raising his flask he emptied it every drop between my lips.
  3543. Oh! infinite pleasure! a slender sip of water came to moisten my
  3544. burning mouth. It was but one sip but it was enough to recall my
  3545. ebbing life.
  3546. I thanked my uncle with clasped hands.
  3547. "Yes," he said, "a draught of water; but it is the very last--you
  3548. hear!--the last. I had kept it as a precious treasure at the bottom
  3549. of my flask. Twenty times, nay, a hundred times, have I fought
  3550. against a frightful impulse to drink it off. But no, Axel, I kept it
  3551. for you."
  3552. "My dear uncle," I said, whilst hot tears trickled down my face.
  3553. "Yes, my poor boy, I knew that as soon as you arrived at these cross
  3554. roads you would drop half dead, and I kept my last drop of water to
  3555. reanimate you."
  3556. "Thank you, thank you," I said. Although my thirst was only partially
  3557. quenched, yet some strength had returned. The muscles of my throat,
  3558. until then contracted, now relaxed again; and the inflammation of my
  3559. lips abated somewhat; and I was now able to speak. .
  3560. "Let us see," I said, "we have now but one thing to do. We have no
  3561. water; we must go back."
  3562. While I spoke my uncle avoided looking at me; he hung his head down;
  3563. his eyes avoided mine.
  3564. "We must return," I exclaimed vehemently; "we must go back on our way
  3565. to Sn�fell. May God give us strength to climb up the crater again!"
  3566. "Return!" said my uncle, as if he was rather answering himself than
  3567. me.
  3568. "Yes, return, without the loss of a minute."
  3569. A long silence followed.
  3570. "So then, Axel," replied the Professor ironically, "you have found no
  3571. courage or energy in these few drops of water?"
  3572. "Courage?"
  3573. "I see you just as feeble-minded as you were before, and still
  3574. expressing only despair!"
  3575. What sort of a man was this I had to do with, and what schemes was he
  3576. now revolving in his fearless mind?
  3577. "What! you won't go back?"
  3578. "Should I renounce this expedition just when we have the fairest
  3579. chance of success! Never!"
  3580. "Then must we resign ourselves to destruction?"
  3581. "No, Axel, no; go back. Hans will go with you. Leave me to myself!"
  3582. "Leave you here!"
  3583. "Leave me, I tell you. I have undertaken this expedition. I will
  3584. carry it out to the end, and I will not return. Go, Axel, go!"
  3585. My uncle was in high state of excitement. His voice, which had for a
  3586. moment been tender and gentle, had now become hard and threatening.
  3587. He was struggling with gloomy resolutions against impossibilities. I
  3588. would not leave him in this bottomless abyss, and on the other hand
  3589. the instinct of self-preservation prompted me to fly.
  3590. The guide watched this scene with his usual phlegmatic unconcern. Yet
  3591. he understood perfectly well what was going on between his two
  3592. companions. The gestures themselves were sufficient to show that we
  3593. were each bent on taking a different road; but Hans seemed to take no
  3594. part in a question upon which depended his life. He was ready to
  3595. start at a given signal, or to stay, if his master so willed it.
  3596. How I wished at this moment I could have made him understand me. My
  3597. words, my complaints, my sorrow would have had some influence over
  3598. that frigid nature. Those dangers which our guide could not
  3599. understand I could have demonstrated and proved to him. Together we
  3600. might have over-ruled the obstinate Professor; if it were needed, we
  3601. might perhaps have compelled him to regain the heights of Sn�fell.
  3602. I drew near to Hans. I placed my hand upon his. He made no movement.
  3603. My parted lips sufficiently revealed my sufferings. The Icelander
  3604. slowly moved his head, and calmly pointing to my uncle said:
  3605. "Master."
  3606. "Master!" I shouted; "you madman! no, he is not the master of our
  3607. life; we must fly, we must drag him. Do you hear me? Do you
  3608. understand?"
  3609. I had seized Hans by the arm. I wished to oblige him to rise. I
  3610. strove with him. My uncle interposed.
  3611. "Be calm, Axel! you will get nothing from that immovable servant.
  3612. Therefore, listen to my proposal."
  3613. I crossed my arms, and confronted my uncle boldly.
  3614. "The want of water," he said, "is the only obstacle in our way. In
  3615. this eastern gallery made up of lavas, schists, and coal, we have not
  3616. met with a single particle of moisture. Perhaps we shall be more
  3617. fortunate if we follow the western tunnel."
  3618. I shook my head incredulously.
  3619. "Hear me to the end," the Professor went on with a firm voice.
  3620. "Whilst you were lying there motionless, I went to examine the
  3621. conformation of that gallery. It penetrates directly downward, and in
  3622. a few hours it will bring us to the granite rocks. There we must meet
  3623. with abundant springs. The nature of the rock assures me of this, and
  3624. instinct agrees with logic to support my conviction. Now, this is my
  3625. proposal. When Columbus asked of his ships' crews for three days more
  3626. to discover a new world, those crews, disheartened and sick as they
  3627. were, recognised the justice of the claim, and he discovered America.
  3628. I am the Columbus of this nether world, and I only ask for one more
  3629. day. If in a single day I have not met with the water that we want, I
  3630. swear to you we will return to the surface of the earth."
  3631. In spite of my irritation I was moved with these words, as well as
  3632. with the violence my uncle was doing to his own wishes in making so
  3633. hazardous a proposal.
  3634. "Well," I said, "do as you will, and God reward your superhuman
  3635. energy. You have now but a few hours to tempt fortune. Let us start!"
  3636. CHAPTER XXII.
  3637. TOTAL FAILURE OF WATER
  3638. This time the descent commenced by the new gallery. Hans walked first
  3639. as was his custom.
  3640. We had not gone a hundred yards when the Professor, moving his
  3641. lantern along the walls, cried:
  3642. "Here are primitive rocks. Now we are in the right way. Forward!"
  3643. When in its early stages the earth was slowly cooling, its
  3644. contraction gave rise in its crust to disruptions, distortions,
  3645. fissures, and chasms. The passage through which we were moving was
  3646. such a fissure, through which at one time granite poured out in a
  3647. molten state. Its thousands of windings formed an inextricable
  3648. labyrinth through the primeval mass.
  3649. As fast as we descended, the succession of beds forming the primitive
  3650. foundation came out with increasing distinctness. Geologists consider
  3651. this primitive matter to be the base of the mineral crust of the
  3652. earth, and have ascertained it to be composed of three different
  3653. formations, schist, gneiss, and mica schist, resting upon that
  3654. unchangeable foundation, the granite.
  3655. Never had mineralogists found themselves in so marvellous a situation
  3656. to study nature in situ. What the boring machine, an insensible,
  3657. inert instrument, was unable to bring to the surface of the inner
  3658. structure of the globe, we were able to peruse with our own eyes and
  3659. handle with our own hands.
  3660. Through the beds of schist, coloured with delicate shades of green,
  3661. ran in winding course threads of copper and manganese, with traces of
  3662. platinum and gold. I thought, what riches are here buried at an
  3663. unapproachable depth in the earth, hidden for ever from the covetous
  3664. eyes of the human race! These treasures have been buried at such a
  3665. profound depth by the convulsions of primeval times that they run no
  3666. chance of ever being molested by the pickaxe or the spade.
  3667. To the schists succeeded gneiss, partially stratified, remarkable for
  3668. the parallelism and regularity of its lamina, then mica schists, laid
  3669. in large plates or flakes, revealing their lamellated structure by
  3670. the sparkle of the white shining mica.
  3671. The light from our apparatus, reflected from the small facets of
  3672. quartz, shot sparkling rays at every angle, and I seemed to be moving
  3673. through a diamond, within which the quickly darting rays broke across
  3674. each other in a thousand flashing coruscations.
  3675. About six o'clock this brilliant fete of illuminations underwent a
  3676. sensible abatement of splendour, then almost ceased. The walls
  3677. assumed a crystallised though sombre appearance; mica was more
  3678. closely mingled with the feldspar and quartz to form the proper rocky
  3679. foundations of the earth, which bears without distortion or crushing
  3680. the weight of the four terrestrial systems. We were immured within
  3681. prison walls of granite.
  3682. It was eight in the evening. No signs of water had yet appeared. I
  3683. was suffering horribly. My uncle strode on. He refused to stop. He
  3684. was listening anxiously for the murmur of distant springs. But, no,
  3685. there was dead silence.
  3686. And now my limbs were failing beneath me. I resisted pain and
  3687. torture, that I might not stop my uncle, which would have driven him
  3688. to despair, for the day was drawing near to its end, and it was his
  3689. last.
  3690. At last I failed utterly; I uttered a cry and fell.
  3691. "Come to me, I am dying."
  3692. My uncle retraced his steps. He gazed upon me with his arms crossed;
  3693. then these muttered words passed his lips:
  3694. "It's all over!"
  3695. The last thing I saw was a fearful gesture of rage, and my eyes
  3696. closed.
  3697. When I reopened them I saw my two companions motionless and rolled up
  3698. in their coverings. Were they asleep? As for me, I could not get one
  3699. moment's sleep. I was suffering too keenly, and what embittered my
  3700. thoughts was that there was no remedy. My uncle's last words echoed
  3701. painfully in my ears: "it's all over!" For in such a fearful state of
  3702. debility it was madness to think of ever reaching the upper world
  3703. again.
  3704. We had above us a league and a half of terrestrial crust. The weight
  3705. of it seemed to be crushing down upon my shoulders. I felt weighed
  3706. down, and I exhausted myself with imaginary violent exertions to turn
  3707. round upon my granite couch.
  3708. A few hours passed away. A deep silence reigned around us, the
  3709. silence of the grave. No sound could reach us through walls, the
  3710. thinnest of which were five miles thick.
  3711. Yet in the midst of my stupefaction I seemed to be aware of a noise.
  3712. It was dark down the tunnel, but I seemed to see the Icelander
  3713. vanishing from our sight with the lamp in his hand.
  3714. Why was he leaving us? Was Hans going to forsake us? My uncle was
  3715. fast asleep. I wanted to shout, but my voice died upon my parched and
  3716. swollen lips. The darkness became deeper, and the last sound died
  3717. away in the far distance.
  3718. "Hans has abandoned us," I cried. "Hans! Hans!"
  3719. But these words were only spoken within me. They went no farther. Yet
  3720. after the first moment of terror I felt ashamed of suspecting a man
  3721. of such extraordinary faithfulness. Instead of ascending he was
  3722. descending the gallery. An evil design would have taken him up not
  3723. down. This reflection restored me to calmness, and I turned to other
  3724. thoughts. None but some weighty motive could have induced so quiet a
  3725. man to forfeit his sleep. Was he on a journey of discovery? Had he
  3726. during the silence of the night caught a sound, a murmuring of
  3727. something in the distance, which had failed to affect my hearing?
  3728. CHAPTER XXIII.
  3729. WATER DISCOVERED
  3730. For a whole hour I was trying to work out in my delirious brain the
  3731. reasons which might have influenced this seemingly tranquil huntsman.
  3732. The absurdest notions ran in utter confusion through my mind. I
  3733. thought madness was coming on!
  3734. But at last a noise of footsteps was heard in the dark abyss. Hans
  3735. was approaching. A flickering light was beginning to glimmer on the
  3736. wall of our darksome prison; then it came out full at the mouth of
  3737. the gallery. Hans appeared.
  3738. He drew close to my uncle, laid his hand upon his shoulder, and
  3739. gently woke him. My uncle rose up.
  3740. "What is the matter?" he asked.
  3741. "_Watten!_" replied the huntsman.
  3742. No doubt under the inspiration of intense pain everybody becomes
  3743. endowed with the gift of divers tongues. I did not know a word of
  3744. Danish, yet instinctively I understood the word he had uttered.
  3745. "Water! water!" I cried, clapping my hands and gesticulating like a
  3746. madman.
  3747. "Water!" repeated my uncle. "Hvar?" he asked, in Icelandic.
  3748. "_Nedat,_" replied Hans.
  3749. "Where? Down below!" I understood it all. I seized the hunter's
  3750. hands, and pressed them while he looked on me without moving a muscle
  3751. of his countenance.
  3752. The preparations for our departure were not long in making, and we
  3753. were soon on our way down a passage inclining two feet in seven. In
  3754. an hour we had gone a mile and a quarter, and descended two thousand
  3755. feet.
  3756. Then I began to hear distinctly quite a new sound of something
  3757. running within the thickness of the granite wall, a kind of dull,
  3758. dead rumbling, like distant thunder. During the first part of our
  3759. walk, not meeting with the promised spring, I felt my agony
  3760. returning; but then my uncle acquainted me with the cause of the
  3761. strange noise.
  3762. "Hans was not mistaken," he said. "What you hear is the rushing of a
  3763. torrent."
  3764. "A torrent?" I exclaimed.
  3765. "There can be no doubt; a subterranean river is flowing around us."
  3766. We hurried forward in the greatest excitement. I was no longer
  3767. sensible of my fatigue. This murmuring of waters close at hand was
  3768. already refreshing me. It was audibly increasing. The torrent, after
  3769. having for some time flowed over our heads, was now running within
  3770. the left wall, roaring and rushing. Frequently I touched the wall,
  3771. hoping to feel some indications of moisture: But there was no hope
  3772. here.
  3773. Yet another half hour, another half league was passed.
  3774. Then it became clear that the hunter had gone no farther. Guided by
  3775. an instinct peculiar to mountaineers he had as it were felt this
  3776. torrent through the rock; but he had certainly seen none of the
  3777. precious liquid; he had drunk nothing himself.
  3778. Soon it became evident that if we continued our walk we should widen
  3779. the distance between ourselves and the stream, the noise of which was
  3780. becoming fainter.
  3781. We returned. Hans stopped where the torrent seemed closest. I sat
  3782. near the wall, while the waters were flowing past me at a distance of
  3783. two feet with extreme violence. But there was a thick granite wall
  3784. between us and the object of our desires.
  3785. Without reflection, without asking if there were any means of
  3786. procuring the water, I gave way to a movement of despair.
  3787. Hans glanced at me with, I thought, a smile of compassion.
  3788. He rose and took the lamp. I followed him. He moved towards the wall.
  3789. I looked on. He applied his ear against the dry stone, and moved it
  3790. slowly to and fro, listening intently. I perceived at once that he
  3791. was examining to find the exact place where the torrent could be
  3792. heard the loudest. He met with that point on the left side of the
  3793. tunnel, at three feet from the ground.
  3794. I was stirred up with excitement. I hardly dared guess what the
  3795. hunter was about to do. But I could not but understand, and applaud
  3796. and cheer him on, when I saw him lay hold of the pickaxe to make an
  3797. attack upon the rock.
  3798. "We are saved!" I cried.
  3799. "Yes," cried my uncle, almost frantic with excitement. "Hans is
  3800. right. Capital fellow! Who but he would have thought of it?"
  3801. Yes; who but he? Such an expedient, however simple, would never have
  3802. entered into our minds. True, it seemed most hazardous to strike a
  3803. blow of the hammer in this part of the earth's structure. Suppose
  3804. some displacement should occur and crush us all! Suppose the torrent,
  3805. bursting through, should drown us in a sudden flood! There was
  3806. nothing vain in these fancies. But still no fears of falling rocks or
  3807. rushing floods could stay us now; and our thirst was so intense that,
  3808. to satisfy it, we would have dared the waves of the north Atlantic.
  3809. Hans set about the task which my uncle and I together could not have
  3810. accomplished. If our impatience had armed our hands with power, we
  3811. should have shattered the rock into a thousand fragments. Not so
  3812. Hans. Full of self possession, he calmly wore his way through the
  3813. rock with a steady succession of light and skilful strokes, working
  3814. through an aperture six inches wide at the outside. I could hear a
  3815. louder noise of flowing waters, and I fancied I could feel the
  3816. delicious fluid refreshing my parched lips.
  3817. The pick had soon penetrated two feet into the granite partition, and
  3818. our man had worked for above an hour. I was in an agony of
  3819. impatience. My uncle wanted to employ stronger measures, and I had
  3820. some difficulty in dissuading him; still he had just taken a pickaxe
  3821. in his hand, when a sudden hissing was heard, and a jet of water
  3822. spurted out with violence against the opposite wall.
  3823. Hans, almost thrown off his feet by the violence of the shock,
  3824. uttered a cry of grief and disappointment, of which I soon under-.
  3825. stood the cause, when plunging my hands into the spouting torrent, I
  3826. withdrew them in haste, for the water was scalding hot.
  3827. "The water is at the boiling point," I cried.
  3828. "Well, never mind, let it cool," my uncle replied.
  3829. The tunnel was filling with steam, whilst a stream was forming, which
  3830. by degrees wandered away into subterranean windings, and soon we had
  3831. the satisfaction of swallowing our first draught.
  3832. Could anything be more delicious than the sensation that our burning
  3833. intolerable thirst was passing away, and leaving us to enjoy comfort
  3834. and pleasure? But where was this water from? No matter. It was water;
  3835. and though still warm, it brought life back to the dying. I kept
  3836. drinking without stopping, and almost without tasting.
  3837. At last after a most delightful time of reviving energy, I cried,
  3838. "Why, this is a chalybeate spring!"
  3839. "Nothing could be better for the digestion," said my uncle. "It is
  3840. highly impregnated with iron. It will be as good for us as going to
  3841. the Spa, or to T�plitz."
  3842. "Well, it is delicious!"
  3843. "Of course it is, water should be, found six miles underground. It
  3844. has an inky flavour, which is not at all unpleasant. What a capital
  3845. source of strength Hans has found for us here. We will call it after
  3846. his name."
  3847. "Agreed," I cried.
  3848. And Hansbach it was from that moment.
  3849. Hans was none the prouder. After a moderate draught, he went quietly
  3850. into a corner to rest.
  3851. "Now," I said, "we must not lose this water."
  3852. "What is the use of troubling ourselves?" my uncle, replied. "I fancy
  3853. it will never fail."
  3854. "Never mind, we cannot be sure; let us fill the water bottle and our
  3855. flasks, and then stop up the opening."
  3856. My advice was followed so far as getting in a supply; but the
  3857. stopping up of the hole was not so easy to accomplish. It was in vain
  3858. that we took up fragments of granite, and stuffed them in with tow,
  3859. we only scalded our hands without succeeding. The pressure was too
  3860. great, and our efforts were fruitless.
  3861. "It is quite plain," said I, "that the higher body of this water is
  3862. at a considerable elevation. The force of the jet shows that."
  3863. "No doubt," answered my uncle. "If this column of water is 32,000
  3864. feet high--that is, from the surface of the earth, it is equal to
  3865. the weight of a thousand atmospheres. But I have got an idea."
  3866. "Well?"
  3867. "Why should we trouble ourselves to stop the stream from coming out
  3868. at all?"
  3869. "Because--" Well, I could not assign a reason.
  3870. "When our flasks are empty, where shall we fill them again? Can we
  3871. tell that?"
  3872. No; there was no certainty.
  3873. "Well, let us allow the water to run on. It will flow down, and will
  3874. both guide and refresh us."
  3875. "That is well planned," I cried. "With this stream for our guide,
  3876. there is no reason why we should not succeed in our undertaking."
  3877. "Ah, my boy! you agree with me now," cried the Professor, laughing.
  3878. "I agree with you most heartily."
  3879. "Well, let us rest awhile; and then we will start again."
  3880. I was forgetting that it was night. The chronometer soon informed me
  3881. of that fact; and in a very short time, refreshed and thankful, we
  3882. all three fell into a sound sleep.
  3883. CHAPTER XXIV.
  3884. WELL SAID, OLD MOLE! CANST THOU WORK I' THE GROUND SO FAST?
  3885. By the next day we had forgotten all our sufferings. At first, I was
  3886. wondering that I was no longer thirsty, and I was for asking for the
  3887. reason. The answer came in the murmuring of the stream at my feet.
  3888. We breakfasted, and drank of this excellent chalybeate water. I felt
  3889. wonderfully stronger, and quite decided upon pushing on. Why should
  3890. not so firmly convinced a man as my uncle, furnished with so
  3891. industrious a guide as Hans, and accompanied by so determined a
  3892. nephew as myself, go on to final success? Such were the magnificent
  3893. plans which struggled for mastery within me. If it had been proposed
  3894. to me to return to the summit of Sn�fell, I should have indignantly
  3895. declined.
  3896. Most fortunately, all we had to do was to descend.
  3897. "Let us start!" I cried, awakening by my shouts the echoes of the
  3898. vaulted hollows of the earth.
  3899. On Thursday, at 8 a.m., we started afresh. The granite tunnel winding
  3900. from side to side, earned us past unexpected turns, and seemed almost
  3901. to form a labyrinth; but, on the whole, its direction seemed to be
  3902. south-easterly. My uncle never ceased to consult his compass, to keep
  3903. account of the ground gone over.
  3904. The gallery dipped down a very little way from the horizontal,
  3905. scarcely more than two inches in a fathom, and the stream ran gently
  3906. murmuring at our feet. I compared it to a friendly genius guiding us
  3907. underground, and caressed with my hand the soft naiad, whose
  3908. comforting voice accompanied our steps. With my reviving spirits
  3909. these mythological notions seemed to come unbidden.
  3910. As for my uncle, he was beginning to storm against the horizontal
  3911. road. He loved nothing better than a vertical path; but this way
  3912. seemed indefinitely prolonged, and instead of sliding along the
  3913. hypothenuse as we were now doing, he would willingly have dropped
  3914. down the terrestrial radius. But there was no help for it, and as
  3915. long as we were approaching the centre at all we felt that we must
  3916. not complain.
  3917. From time to time, a steeper path appeared; our naiad then began to
  3918. tumble before us with a hoarser murmur, and we went down with her to
  3919. a greater depth.
  3920. On the whole, that day and the next we made considerable way
  3921. horizontally, very little vertically.
  3922. On Friday evening, the 10th of July, according to our calculations,
  3923. we were thirty leagues south-east of Rejkiavik, and at a depth of two
  3924. leagues and a half.
  3925. At our feet there now opened a frightful abyss. My uncle, however,
  3926. was not to be daunted, and he clapped his hands at the steepness of
  3927. the descent.
  3928. "This will take us a long way," he cried, "and without much
  3929. difficulty; for the projections in the rock form quite a staircase."
  3930. The ropes were so fastened by Hans as to guard against accident, and
  3931. the descent commenced. I can hardly call it perilous, for I was
  3932. beginning to be familiar with this kind of exercise.
  3933. This well, or abyss, was a narrow cleft in the mass of the granite,
  3934. called by geologists a 'fault,' and caused by the unequal cooling of
  3935. the globe of the earth. If it had at one time been a passage for
  3936. eruptive matter thrown out by Sn�fell, I still could not understand
  3937. why no trace was left of its passage. We kept going down a kind of
  3938. winding staircase, which seemed almost to have been made by the hand
  3939. of man.
  3940. Every quarter of an hour we were obliged to halt, to take a little
  3941. necessary repose and restore the action of our limbs. We then sat
  3942. down upon a fragment of rock, and we talked as we ate and drank from
  3943. the stream.
  3944. Of course, down this fault the Hansbach fell in a cascade, and lost
  3945. some of its volume; but there was enough and to spare to slake our
  3946. thirst. Besides, when the incline became more gentle, it would of
  3947. course resume its peaceable course. At this moment it reminded me of
  3948. my worthy uncle, in his frequent fits of impatience and anger, while
  3949. below it ran with the calmness of the Icelandic hunter.
  3950. On the 6th and 7th of July we kept following the spiral curves of
  3951. this singular well, penetrating in actual distance no more than two
  3952. leagues; but being carried to a depth of five leagues below the level
  3953. of the sea. But on the 8th, about noon, the fault took, towards the
  3954. south-east, a much gentler slope, one of about forty-five degrees.
  3955. Then the road became monotonously easy. It could not be otherwise,
  3956. for there was no landscape to vary the stages of our journey.
  3957. On Wednesday, the 15th, we were seven leagues underground, and had
  3958. travelled fifty leagues away from Sn�fell. Although we were tired,
  3959. our health was perfect, and the medicine chest had not yet had
  3960. occasion to be opened.
  3961. My uncle noted every hour the indications of the compass, the
  3962. chronometer, the aneroid, and the thermometer the very same which he
  3963. has published in his scientific report of our journey. It was
  3964. therefore not difficult to know exactly our whereabouts. When he told
  3965. me that we had gone fifty leagues horizontally, I could not repress
  3966. an exclamation of astonishment, at the thought that we had now long
  3967. left Iceland behind us.
  3968. "What is the matter?" he cried.
  3969. "I was reflecting that if your calculations are correct we are no
  3970. longer under Iceland."
  3971. "Do you think so?"
  3972. "I am not mistaken," I said, and examining the map, I added, "We have
  3973. passed Cape Portland, and those fifty leagues bring us under the wide
  3974. expanse of ocean."
  3975. "Under the sea," my uncle repeated, rubbing his hands with delight.
  3976. "Can it be?" I said. "Is the ocean spread above our heads?"
  3977. "Of course, Axel. What can be more natural? At Newcastle are there
  3978. not coal mines extending far under the sea?"
  3979. It was all very well for the Professor to call this so simple, but I
  3980. could not feel quite easy at the thought that the boundless ocean was
  3981. rolling over my head. And yet it really mattered very little whether
  3982. it was the plains and mountains that covered our heads, or the
  3983. Atlantic waves, as long as we were arched over by solid granite. And,
  3984. besides, I was getting used to this idea; for the tunnel, now running
  3985. straight, now winding as capriciously in its inclines as in its
  3986. turnings, but constantly preserving its south-easterly direction, and
  3987. always running deeper, was gradually carrying us to very great depths
  3988. indeed.
  3989. Four days later, Saturday, the 18th of July, in the evening, we
  3990. arrived at a kind of vast grotto; and here my uncle paid Hans his
  3991. weekly wages, and it was settled that the next day, Sunday, should be
  3992. a day of rest.
  3993. CHAPTER XXV.
  3994. DE PROFUNDIS
  3995. I therefore awoke next day relieved from the preoccupation of an
  3996. immediate start. Although we were in the very deepest of known
  3997. depths, there was something not unpleasant about it. And, besides, we
  3998. were beginning to get accustomed to this troglodyte [1] life. I no
  3999. longer thought of sun, moon, and stars, trees, houses, and towns, nor
  4000. of any of those terrestrial superfluities which are necessaries of
  4001. men who live upon the earth's surface. Being fossils, we looked upon
  4002. all those things as mere jokes.
  4003. The grotto was an immense apartment. Along its granite floor ran our
  4004. faithful stream. At this distance from its spring the water was
  4005. scarcely tepid, and we drank of it with pleasure.
  4006. After breakfast the Professor gave a few hours to the arrangement of
  4007. his daily notes.
  4008. "First," said he, "I will make a calculation to ascertain our exact
  4009. position. I hope, after our return, to draw a map of our journey,
  4010. which will be in reality a vertical section of the globe, containing
  4011. the track of our expedition."
  4012. "That will be curious, uncle; but are your observations sufficiently
  4013. accurate to enable you to do this correctly?"
  4014. "Yes; I have everywhere observed the angles and the inclines. I am
  4015. sure there is no error. Let us see where we are now. Take your
  4016. compass, and note the direction."
  4017. I looked, and replied carefully:
  4018. [1] tpwgln, a hole; dnw, to creep into. The name of an Ethiopian
  4019. tribe who lived in caves and holes. ??????, a hole, and ???, to creep
  4020. into.
  4021. "South-east by east."
  4022. "Well," answered the Professor, after a rapid calculation, "I infer
  4023. that we have gone eighty-five leagues since we started."
  4024. "Therefore we are under mid-Atlantic?"
  4025. "To be sure we are."
  4026. "And perhaps at this very moment there is a storm above, and ships
  4027. over our heads are being rudely tossed by the tempest."
  4028. "Quite probable."
  4029. "And whales are lashing the roof of our prison with their tails?"
  4030. "It may be, Axel, but they won't shake us here. But let us go back to
  4031. our calculation. Here we are eighty-five leagues south-east of
  4032. Sn�fell, and I reckon that we are at a depth of sixteen leagues."
  4033. "Sixteen leagues?" I cried.
  4034. "No doubt."
  4035. "Why, this is the very limit assigned by science to the thickness of
  4036. the crust of the earth."
  4037. "I don't deny it."
  4038. "And here, according to the law of increasing temperature, there
  4039. ought to be a heat of 2,732� Fahr.!"
  4040. "So there should, my lad."
  4041. "And all this solid granite ought to be running in fusion."
  4042. "You see that it is not so, and that, as so often happens, facts come
  4043. to overthrow theories."
  4044. "I am obliged to agree; but, after all, it is surprising."
  4045. "What does the thermometer say?"
  4046. "Twenty-seven, six tenths (82� Fahr.)."
  4047. "Therefore the savants are wrong by 2,705�, and the proportional
  4048. increase is a mistake. Therefore Humphry Davy was right, and I am not
  4049. wrong in following him. What do you say now?"
  4050. "Nothing."
  4051. In truth, I had a good deal to say. I gave way in no respect to
  4052. Davy's theory. I still held to the central heat, although I did not
  4053. feel its effects. I preferred to admit in truth, that this chimney of
  4054. an extinct volcano, lined with lavas, which are non-conductors of
  4055. heat, did not suffer the heat to pass through its walls.
  4056. But without stopping to look up new arguments I simply took up our
  4057. situation such as it was.
  4058. "Well, admitting all your calculations to be quite correct, you must
  4059. allow me to draw one rigid result therefrom."
  4060. "What is it. Speak freely."
  4061. "At the latitude of Iceland, where we now are, the radius of the
  4062. earth, the distance from the centre to the surface is about 1,583
  4063. leagues; let us say in round numbers 1,600 leagues, or 4,800 miles.
  4064. Out of 1,600 leagues we have gone twelve!"
  4065. "So you say."
  4066. "And these twelve at a cost of 85 leagues diagonally?"
  4067. "Exactly so."
  4068. "In twenty days?"
  4069. "Yes."
  4070. "Now, sixteen leagues are the hundredth part of the earth's radius.
  4071. At this rate we shall be two thousand days, or nearly five years and
  4072. a half, in getting to the centre."
  4073. No answer was vouchsafed to this rational conclusion. "Without
  4074. reckoning, too, that if a vertical depth of sixteen leagues can be
  4075. attained only by a diagonal descent of eighty-four, it follows that
  4076. we must go eight thousand miles in a south-easterly direction; so
  4077. that we shall emerge from some point in the earth's circumference
  4078. instead of getting to the centre!"
  4079. "Confusion to all your figures, and all your hypotheses besides,"
  4080. shouted my uncle in a sudden rage. "What is the basis of them all?
  4081. How do you know that this passage does not run straight to our
  4082. destination? Besides, there is a precedent. What one man has done,
  4083. another may do."
  4084. "I hope so; but, still, I may be permitted--"
  4085. "You shall have my leave to hold your tongue, Axel, but not to talk
  4086. in that irrational way."
  4087. I could see the awful Professor bursting through my uncle's skin, and
  4088. I took timely warning.
  4089. "Now look at your aneroid. What does that say?"
  4090. "It says we are under considerable pressure."
  4091. "Very good; so you see that by going gradually down, and getting
  4092. accustomed to the density of the atmosphere, we don't suffer at all."
  4093. "Nothing, except a little pain in the ears."
  4094. "That's nothing, and you may get rid of even that by quick breathing
  4095. whenever you feel the pain."
  4096. "Exactly so," I said, determined not to say a word that might cross
  4097. my uncle's prejudices. "There is even positive pleasure in living in
  4098. this dense atmosphere. Have you observed how intense sound is down
  4099. here?"
  4100. "No doubt it is. A deaf man would soon learn to hear perfectly."
  4101. "But won't this density augment?"
  4102. "Yes; according to a rather obscure law. It is well known that the
  4103. weight of bodies diminishes as fast as we descend. You know that it
  4104. is at the surface of the globe that weight is most sensibly felt, and
  4105. that at the centre there is no weight at all."
  4106. "I am aware of that; but, tell me, will not air at last acquire the
  4107. density of water?"
  4108. "Of course, under a pressure of seven hundred and ten atmospheres."
  4109. "And how, lower down still?"
  4110. "Lower down the density will still increase."
  4111. "But how shall we go down then."
  4112. "Why, we must fill our pockets with stones."
  4113. "Well, indeed, my worthy uncle, you are never at a loss for an
  4114. answer."
  4115. I dared venture no farther into the region of probabilities, for I
  4116. might presently have stumbled upon an impossibility, which would have
  4117. brought the Professor on the scene when he was not wanted.
  4118. Still, it was evident that the air, under a pressure which might
  4119. reach that of thousands of atmospheres, would at last reach the solid
  4120. state, and then, even if our bodies could resist the strain, we
  4121. should be stopped, and no reasonings would be able to get us on any
  4122. farther.
  4123. But I did not advance this argument. My uncle would have met it with
  4124. his inevitable Saknussemm, a precedent which possessed no weight with
  4125. me; for even if the journey of the learned Icelander were really
  4126. attested, there was one very simple answer, that in the sixteenth
  4127. century there was neither barometer or aneroid and therefore
  4128. Saknussemm could not tell how far he had gone.
  4129. But I kept this objection to myself, and waited the course of events.
  4130. The rest of the day was passed in calculations and in conversations.
  4131. I remained a steadfast adherent of the opinions of Professor
  4132. Liedenbrock, and I envied the stolid indifference of Hans, who,
  4133. without going into causes and effects, went on with his eyes shut
  4134. wherever his destiny guided him.
  4135. CHAPTER XXVI.
  4136. THE WORST PERIL OF ALL
  4137. It must be confessed that hitherto things had not gone on so badly,
  4138. and that I had small reason to complain. If our difficulties became
  4139. no worse, we might hope to reach our end. And to what a height of
  4140. scientific glory we should then attain! I had become quite a
  4141. Liedenbrock in my reasonings; seriously I had. But would this state
  4142. of things last in the strange place we had come to? Perhaps it might.
  4143. For several days steeper inclines, some even frightfully near to the
  4144. perpendicular, brought us deeper and deeper into the mass of the
  4145. interior of the earth. Some days we advanced nearer to the centre by
  4146. a league and a half, or nearly two leagues. These were perilous
  4147. descents, in which the skill and marvellous coolness of Hans were
  4148. invaluable to us. That unimpassioned Icelander devoted himself with
  4149. incomprehensible deliberation; and, thanks to him, we crossed many a
  4150. dangerous spot which we should never have cleared alone.
  4151. But his habit of silence gained upon him day by day, and was
  4152. infecting us. External objects produce decided effects upon the
  4153. brain. A man shut up between four walls soon loses the power to
  4154. associate words and ideas together. How many prisoners in solitary
  4155. confinement become idiots, if not mad, for want of exercise for the
  4156. thinking faculty!
  4157. During the fortnight following our last conversation, no incident
  4158. occurred worthy of being recorded. But I have good reason for
  4159. remembering one very serious event which took place at this time, and
  4160. of which I could scarcely now forget the smallest details.
  4161. By the 7th of August our successive descents had brought us to a
  4162. depth of thirty leagues; that is, that for a space of thirty leagues
  4163. there were over our heads solid beds of rock, ocean, continents, and
  4164. towns. We must have been two hundred leagues from Iceland.
  4165. On that day the tunnel went down a gentle slope. I was ahead of the
  4166. others. My uncle was carrying one of Ruhmkorff's lamps and I the
  4167. other. I was examining the beds of granite.
  4168. Suddenly turning round I observed that I was alone.
  4169. Well, well, I thought; I have been going too fast, or Hans and my
  4170. uncle have stopped on the way. Come, this won't do; I must join them.
  4171. Fortunately there is not much of an ascent.
  4172. I retraced my steps. I walked for a quarter of an hour. I gazed into
  4173. the darkness. I shouted. No reply: my voice was lost in the midst of
  4174. the cavernous echoes which alone replied to my call.
  4175. I began to feel uneasy. A shudder ran through me.
  4176. "Calmly!" I said aloud to myself, "I am sure to find my companions
  4177. again. There are not two roads. I was too far ahead. I will return!"
  4178. For half an hour I climbed up. I listened for a call, and in that
  4179. dense atmosphere a voice could reach very far. But there was a dreary
  4180. silence in all that long gallery. I stopped. I could not believe that
  4181. I was lost. I was only bewildered for a time, not lost. I was sure I
  4182. should find my way again.
  4183. "Come," I repeated, "since there is but one road, and they are on it,
  4184. I must find them again. I have but to ascend still. Unless, indeed,
  4185. missing me, and supposing me to be behind, they too should have gone
  4186. back. But even in this case I have only to make the greater haste. I
  4187. shall find them, I am sure."
  4188. I repeated these words in the fainter tones of a half-convinced man.
  4189. Besides, to associate even such simple ideas with words, and reason
  4190. with them, was a work of time.
  4191. A doubt then seized upon me. Was I indeed in advance when we became
  4192. separated? Yes, to be sure I was. Hans was after me, preceding my
  4193. uncle. He had even stopped for a while to strap his baggage better
  4194. over his shoulders. I could remember this little incident. It was at
  4195. that very moment that I must have gone on.
  4196. Besides, I thought, have not I a guarantee that I shall not lose my
  4197. way, a clue in the labyrinth, that cannot be broken, my faithful
  4198. stream? I have but to trace it back, and I must come upon them.
  4199. This conclusion revived my spirits, and I resolved to resume my march
  4200. without loss of time.
  4201. How I then blessed my uncle's foresight in preventing the hunter from
  4202. stopping up the hole in the granite. This beneficent spring, after
  4203. having satisfied our thirst on the road, would now be my guide among
  4204. the windings of the terrestrial crust.
  4205. Before starting afresh I thought a wash would do me good. I stooped
  4206. to bathe my face in the Hansbach.
  4207. To my stupefaction and utter dismay my feet trod only--the rough dry
  4208. granite. The stream was no longer at my feet.
  4209. CHAPTER XXVII.
  4210. LOST IN THE BOWELS OF THE EARTH
  4211. To describe my despair would be impossible. No words could tell it. I
  4212. was buried alive, with the prospect before me of dying of hunger and
  4213. thirst.
  4214. Mechanically I swept the ground with my hands. How dry and hard the
  4215. rock seemed to me!
  4216. But how had I left the course of the stream? For it was a terrible
  4217. fact that it no longer ran at my side. Then I understood the reason
  4218. of that fearful, silence, when for the last time I listened to hear
  4219. if any sound from my companions could reach my ears. At the moment
  4220. when I left the right road I had not noticed the absence of the
  4221. stream. It is evident that at that moment a deviation had presented
  4222. itself before me, whilst the Hansbach, following the caprice of
  4223. another incline, had gone with my companions away into unknown depths.
  4224. How was I to return? There was not a trace of their footsteps or of
  4225. my own, for the foot left no mark upon the granite floor. I racked my
  4226. brain for a solution of this impracticable problem. One word
  4227. described my position. Lost!
  4228. Lost at an immeasurable depth! Thirty leagues of rock seemed to weigh
  4229. upon my shoulders with a dreadful pressure. I felt crushed.
  4230. I tried to carry back my ideas to things on the surface of the earth.
  4231. I could scarcely succeed. Hamburg, the house in the K�nigstrasse, my
  4232. poor Gr�uben, all that busy world underneath which I was wandering
  4233. about, was passing in rapid confusion before my terrified memory. I
  4234. could revive with vivid reality all the incidents of our voyage,
  4235. Iceland, M. Fridrikssen, Sn�fell. I said to myself that if, in such a
  4236. position as I was now in, I was fool enough to cling to one glimpse
  4237. of hope, it would be madness, and that the best thing I could do was
  4238. to despair.
  4239. What human power could restore me to the light of the sun by rending
  4240. asunder the huge arches of rock which united over my head,
  4241. buttressing each other with impregnable strength? Who could place my
  4242. feet on the right path, and bring me back to my company?
  4243. "Oh, my uncle!" burst from my lips in the tone of despair.
  4244. It was my only word of reproach, for I knew how much he must be
  4245. suffering in seeking me, wherever he might be.
  4246. When I saw myself thus far removed from all earthly help I had
  4247. recourse to heavenly succour. The remembrance of my childhood, the
  4248. recollection of my mother, whom I had only known in my tender early
  4249. years, came back to me, and I knelt in prayer imploring for the
  4250. Divine help of which I was so little worthy.
  4251. This return of trust in God's providence allayed the turbulence of my
  4252. fears, and I was enabled to concentrate upon my situation all the
  4253. force of my intelligence.
  4254. I had three days' provisions with me and my flask was full. But I
  4255. could not remain alone for long. Should I go up or down?
  4256. Up, of course; up continually.
  4257. I must thus arrive at the point where I had left the stream, that
  4258. fatal turn in the road. With the stream at my feet, I might hope to
  4259. regain the summit of Sn�fell.
  4260. Why had I not thought of that sooner? Here was evidently a chance of
  4261. safety. The most pressing duty was to find out again the course of
  4262. the Hansbach. I rose, and leaning upon my iron-pointed stick I
  4263. ascended the gallery. The slope was rather steep. I walked on without
  4264. hope but without indecision, like a man who has made up his mind.
  4265. For half an hour I met with no obstacle. I tried to recognise my way
  4266. by the form of the tunnel, by the projections of certain rocks, by
  4267. the disposition of the fractures. But no particular sign appeared,
  4268. and I soon saw that this gallery could not bring me back to the
  4269. turning point. It came to an abrupt end. I struck against an
  4270. impenetrable wall, and fell down upon the rock.
  4271. Unspeakable despair then seized upon me. I lay overwhelmed, aghast!
  4272. My last hope was shattered against this granite wall.
  4273. Lost in this labyrinth, whose windings crossed each other in all
  4274. directions, it was no use to think of flight any longer. Here I must
  4275. die the most dreadful of deaths. And, strange to say, the thought
  4276. came across me that when some day my petrified remains should be
  4277. found thirty leagues below the surface in the bowels of the earth,
  4278. the discovery might lead to grave scientific discussions.
  4279. I tried to speak aloud, but hoarse sounds alone passed my dry lips. I
  4280. panted for breath.
  4281. In the midst of my agony a new terror laid hold of me. In falling my
  4282. lamp had got wrong. I could not set it right, and its light was
  4283. paling and would soon disappear altogether.
  4284. I gazed painfully upon the luminous current growing weaker and weaker
  4285. in the wire coil. A dim procession of moving shadows seemed slowly
  4286. unfolding down the darkening walls. I scarcely dared to shut my eyes
  4287. for one moment, for fear of losing the least glimmer of this precious
  4288. light. Every instant it seemed about to vanish and the dense
  4289. blackness to come rolling in palpably upon me.
  4290. One last trembling glimmer shot feebly up. I watched it in trembling
  4291. and anxiety; I drank it in as if I could preserve it, concentrating
  4292. upon it the full power of my eyes, as upon the very last sensation of
  4293. light which they were ever to experience, and the next moment I lay
  4294. in the heavy gloom of deep, thick, unfathomable darkness.
  4295. A terrible cry of anguish burst from me. Upon earth, in the midst of
  4296. the darkest night, light never abdicates its functions altogether. It
  4297. is still subtle and diffusive, but whatever little there may be, the
  4298. eye still catches that little. Here there was not an atom; the total
  4299. darkness made me totally blind.
  4300. Then I began to lose my head. I arose with my arms stretched out
  4301. before me, attempting painfully to feel my way. I began to run
  4302. wildly, hurrying through the inextricable maze, still descending,
  4303. still running through the substance of the earth's thick crust, a
  4304. struggling denizen of geological 'faults,' crying, shouting, yelling,
  4305. soon bruised by contact with the jagged rock, falling and rising
  4306. again bleeding, trying to drink the blood which covered my face, and
  4307. even waiting for some rock to shatter my skull against.
  4308. I shall never know whither my mad career took me. After the lapse of
  4309. some hours, no doubt exhausted, I fell like a lifeless lump at the
  4310. foot of the wall, and lost all consciousness.
  4311. CHAPTER XXVIII.
  4312. THE RESCUE IN THE WHISPERING GALLERY
  4313. When I returned to partial life my face was wet with tears. How long
  4314. that state of insensibility had lasted I cannot say. I had no means
  4315. now of taking account of time. Never was solitude equal to this,
  4316. never had any living being been so utterly forsaken.
  4317. After my fall I had lost a good deal of blood. I felt it flowing over
  4318. me. Ah! how happy I should have been could I have died, and if death
  4319. were not yet to be gone through. I would think no longer. I drove
  4320. away every idea, and, conquered by my grief, I rolled myself to the
  4321. foot of the opposite wall.
  4322. Already I was feeling the approach of another faint, and was hoping
  4323. for complete annihilation, when a loud noise reached me. It was like
  4324. the distant rumble of continuous thunder, and I could hear its
  4325. sounding undulations rolling far away into the remote recesses of the
  4326. abyss.
  4327. Whence could this noise proceed? It must be from some phenomenon
  4328. proceeding in the great depths amidst which I lay helpless. Was it an
  4329. explosion of gas? Was it the fall of some mighty pillar of the globe?
  4330. I listened still. I wanted to know if the noise would be repeated. A
  4331. quarter of an hour passed away. Silence reigned in this gallery. I
  4332. could not hear even the beating of my heart.
  4333. Suddenly my ear, resting by chance against the wall, caught, or
  4334. seemed to catch, certain vague, indescribable, distant, articulate
  4335. sounds, as of words.
  4336. "This is a delusion," I thought.
  4337. But it was not. Listening more attentively, I heard in reality a
  4338. murmuring of voices. But my weakness prevented me from understanding
  4339. what the voices said. Yet it was language, I was sure of it.
  4340. For a moment I feared the words might be my own, brought back by the
  4341. echo. Perhaps I had been crying out unknown to myself. I closed my
  4342. lips firmly, and laid my ear against the wall again.
  4343. "Yes, truly, some one is speaking; those are words!"
  4344. Even a few feet from the wall I could hear distinctly. I succeeded in
  4345. catching uncertain, strange, undistinguishable words. They came as if
  4346. pronounced in low murmured whispers. The word '_forlorad_' was
  4347. several times repeated in a tone of sympathy and sorrow.
  4348. "Help!" I cried with all my might. "Help!"
  4349. I listened, I watched in the darkness for an answer, a cry, a mere
  4350. breath of sound, but nothing came. Some minutes passed. A whole world
  4351. of ideas had opened in my mind. I thought that my weakened voice
  4352. could never penetrate to my companions.
  4353. "It is they," I repeated. "What other men can be thirty leagues under
  4354. ground?"
  4355. I again began to listen. Passing my ear over the wall from one place
  4356. to another, I found the point where the voices seemed to be best
  4357. heard. The word '_forlorad_' again returned; then the rolling of
  4358. thunder which had roused me from my lethargy.
  4359. "No," I said, "no; it is not through such a mass that a voice can be
  4360. heard. I am surrounded by granite walls, and the loudest explosion
  4361. could never be heard here! This noise comes along the gallery. There
  4362. must be here some remarkable exercise of acoustic laws!"
  4363. I listened again, and this time, yes this time, I did distinctly hear
  4364. my name pronounced across the wide interval.
  4365. It was my uncle's own voice! He was talking to the guide. And
  4366. '_forlorad_' is a Danish word.
  4367. Then I understood it all. To make myself heard, I must speak along
  4368. this wall, which would conduct the sound of my voice just as wire
  4369. conducts electricity.
  4370. But there was no time to lose. If my companions moved but a few steps
  4371. away, the acoustic phenomenon would cease. I therefore approached the
  4372. wall, and pronounced these words as clearly as possible:
  4373. "Uncle Liedenbrock!"
  4374. I waited with the deepest anxiety. Sound does not travel with great
  4375. velocity. Even increased density air has no effect upon its rate of
  4376. travelling; it merely augments its intensity. Seconds, which seemed
  4377. ages, passed away, and at last these words reached me:
  4378. "Axel! Axel! is it you?"
  4379. . . . .
  4380. "Yes, yes," I replied.
  4381. . . . .
  4382. "My boy, where are you?"
  4383. . . . .
  4384. "Lost, in the deepest darkness."
  4385. . . . .
  4386. "Where is your lamp?"
  4387. . . . .
  4388. "It is out."
  4389. . . . .
  4390. "And the stream?"
  4391. . . . .
  4392. "Disappeared."
  4393. . . . .
  4394. "Axel, Axel, take courage!"
  4395. . . . .
  4396. "Wait! I am exhausted! I can't answer. Speak to me!"
  4397. . . . .
  4398. "Courage," resumed my uncle. "Don't speak. Listen to me. We have
  4399. looked for you up the gallery and down the gallery. Could not find
  4400. you. I wept for you, my poor boy. At last, supposing you were still
  4401. on the Hansbach, we fired our guns. Our voices are audible to each
  4402. other, but our hands cannot touch. But don't despair, Axel! It is a
  4403. great thing that we can hear each other."
  4404. . . . .
  4405. During this time I had been reflecting. A vague hope was returning to
  4406. my heart. There was one thing I must know to begin with. I placed my
  4407. lips close to the wall, saying:
  4408. "My uncle!"
  4409. . . . .
  4410. "My boy!" came to me after a few seconds.
  4411. . . . .
  4412. "We must know how far we are apart."
  4413. . . . .
  4414. "That is easy."
  4415. . . . .
  4416. "You have your chronometer?"
  4417. . . .
  4418. "Yes."
  4419. . . . .
  4420. "Well, take it. Pronounce my name, noting exactly the second when you
  4421. speak. I will repeat it as soon as it shall come to me, and you will
  4422. observe the exact moment when you get my answer."
  4423. "Yes; and half the time between my call and your answer will exactly
  4424. indicate that which my voice will take in coming to you."
  4425. . . . .
  4426. "Just so, my uncle."
  4427. . . . .
  4428. "Are you ready?"
  4429. . . . .
  4430. "Yes."
  4431. . . . . . .
  4432. "Now, attention. I am going to call your name."
  4433. . . . .
  4434. I put my ear to the wall, and as soon as the name 'Axel' came I
  4435. immediately replied "Axel," then waited.
  4436. . . . .
  4437. "Forty seconds," said my uncle. "Forty seconds between the two words;
  4438. so the sound takes twenty seconds in coming. Now, at the rate of
  4439. 1,120 feet in a second, this is 22,400 feet, or four miles and a
  4440. quarter, nearly."
  4441. . . . .
  4442. "Four miles and a quarter!" I murmured.
  4443. . . . .
  4444. "It will soon be over, Axel."
  4445. . . . .
  4446. "Must I go up or down?"
  4447. . . . .
  4448. "Down--for this reason: We are in a vast chamber, with endless
  4449. galleries. Yours must lead into it, for it seems as if all the clefts
  4450. and fractures of the globe radiated round this vast cavern. So get
  4451. up, and begin walking. Walk on, drag yourself along, if necessary
  4452. slide down the steep places, and at the end you will find us ready to
  4453. receive you. Now begin moving."
  4454. . . . .
  4455. These words cheered me up.
  4456. "Good bye, uncle." I cried. "I am going. There will be no more voices
  4457. heard when once I have started. So good bye!"
  4458. . . . .
  4459. "Good bye, Axel, _au revoir!_"
  4460. . . . .
  4461. These were the last words I heard.
  4462. This wonderful underground conversation, carried on with a distance
  4463. of four miles and a quarter between us, concluded with these words of
  4464. hope. I thanked God from my heart, for it was He who had conducted me
  4465. through those vast solitudes to the point where, alone of all others
  4466. perhaps, the voices of my companions could have reached me.
  4467. This acoustic effect is easily explained on scientific grounds. It
  4468. arose from the concave form of the gallery and the conducting power
  4469. of the rock. There are many examples of this propagation of sounds
  4470. which remain unheard in the intermediate space. I remember that a
  4471. similar phenomenon has been observed in many places; amongst others
  4472. on the internal surface of the gallery of the dome of St. Paul's in
  4473. London, and especially in the midst of the curious caverns among the
  4474. quarries near Syracuse, the most wonderful of which is called
  4475. Dionysius' Ear.
  4476. These remembrances came into my mind, and I clearly saw that since my
  4477. uncle's voice really reached me, there could be no obstacle between
  4478. us. Following the direction by which the sound came, of course I
  4479. should arrive in his presence, if my strength did not fail me.
  4480. I therefore rose; I rather dragged myself than walked. The slope was
  4481. rapid, and I slid down.
  4482. Soon the swiftness of the descent increased horribly, and threatened
  4483. to become a fall. I no longer had the strength to stop myself.
  4484. Suddenly there was no ground under me. I felt myself revolving in
  4485. air, striking and rebounding against the craggy projections of a
  4486. vertical gallery, quite a well; my head struck against a sharp corner
  4487. of the rock, and I became unconscious.
  4488. CHAPTER XXIX.
  4489. THALATTA! THALATTA!
  4490. When I came to myself, I was stretched in half darkness, covered with
  4491. thick coats and blankets. My uncle was watching over me, to discover
  4492. the least sign of life. At my first sigh he took my hand; when I
  4493. opened my eyes he uttered a cry of joy.
  4494. "He lives! he lives!" he cried.
  4495. "Yes, I am still alive," I answered feebly.
  4496. "My dear nephew," said my uncle, pressing me to his breast, "you are
  4497. saved."
  4498. I was deeply touched with the tenderness of his manner as he uttered
  4499. these words, and still more with the care with which he watched over
  4500. me. But such trials were wanted to bring out the Professor's tenderer
  4501. qualities.
  4502. At this moment Hans came, he saw my hand in my uncle's, and I may
  4503. safely say that there was joy in his countenance.
  4504. "_God dag,_" said he.
  4505. "How do you do, Hans? How are you? And now, uncle, tell me where we
  4506. are at the present moment?"
  4507. "To-morrow, Axel, to-morrow. Now you are too faint and weak. I have
  4508. bandaged your head with compresses which must not be disturbed. Sleep
  4509. now, and to-morrow I will tell you all."
  4510. "But do tell me what time it is, and what day."
  4511. "It is Sunday, the 8th of August, and it is ten at night. You must
  4512. ask me no more questions until the 10th."
  4513. In truth I was very weak, and my eyes involuntarily closed. I wanted
  4514. a good night's rest; and I therefore went off to sleep, with the
  4515. knowledge that I had been four long days alone in the heart of the
  4516. earth.
  4517. Next morning, on awakening, I looked round me. My couch, made up of
  4518. all our travelling gear, was in a charming grotto, adorned with
  4519. splendid stalactites, and the soil of which was a fine sand. It was
  4520. half light. There was no torch, no lamp, yet certain mysterious
  4521. glimpses of light came from without through a narrow opening in the
  4522. grotto. I heard too a vague and indistinct noise, something like the
  4523. murmuring of waves breaking upon a shingly shore, and at times I
  4524. seemed to hear the whistling of wind.
  4525. I wondered whether I was awake, whether I was dreaming, whether my brain,
  4526. crazed by my fall, was not affected by imaginary noises. Yet neither
  4527. eyes, nor ears could be so utterly deceived.
  4528. It is a ray of daylight, I thought, sliding in through this cleft in
  4529. the rock! That is indeed the murmuring of waves! That is the rustling
  4530. noise of wind. Am I quite mistaken, or have we returned to the
  4531. surface of the earth? Has my uncle given up the expedition, or is it
  4532. happily terminated?
  4533. I was asking myself these unanswerable questions when the Professor
  4534. entered.
  4535. "Good morning, Axel," he cried cheerily. "I feel sure you are better."
  4536. "Yes, I am indeed," said I, sitting up on my couch.
  4537. "You can hardly fail to be better, for you have slept quietly. Hans
  4538. and I watched you by turns, and we have noticed you were evidently
  4539. recovering."
  4540. "Indeed, I do feel a great deal better, and I will give you a proof
  4541. of that presently if you will let me have my breakfast."
  4542. "You shall eat, lad. The fever has left you. Hans rubbed your wounds
  4543. with some ointment or other of which the Icelanders keep the secret,
  4544. and they have healed marvellously. Our hunter is a splendid fellow!"
  4545. Whilst he went on talking, my uncle prepared a few provisions, which
  4546. I devoured eagerly, notwithstanding his advice to the contrary. All
  4547. the while I was overwhelming him with questions which he answered
  4548. readily.
  4549. I then learnt that my providential fall had brought me exactly to the
  4550. extremity of an almost perpendicular shaft; and as I had landed in
  4551. the midst of an accompanying torrent of stones, the least of which
  4552. would have been enough to crush me, the conclusion was that a loose
  4553. portion of the rock had come down with me. This frightful conveyance
  4554. had thus carried me into the arms of my uncle, where I fell bruised,
  4555. bleeding, and insensible.
  4556. "Truly it is wonderful that you have not been killed a hundred times
  4557. over. But, for the love of God, don't let us ever separate again, or
  4558. we many never see each other more."
  4559. "Not separate! Is the journey not over, then?" I opened a pair of
  4560. astonished eyes, which immediately called for the question:
  4561. "What is the matter, Axel?"
  4562. "I have a question to ask you. You say that I am safe and sound?"
  4563. "No doubt you are."
  4564. "And all my limbs unbroken?"
  4565. "Certainly."
  4566. "And my head?"
  4567. "Your head, except for a few bruises, is all right; and it is on your
  4568. shoulders, where it ought to be."
  4569. "Well, I am afraid my brain is affected."
  4570. "Your mind affected!"
  4571. "Yes, I fear so. Are we again on the surface of the globe?"
  4572. "No, certainly not."
  4573. "Then I must be mad; for don't I see the light of day, and don't I
  4574. hear the wind blowing, and the sea breaking on the shore?"
  4575. "Ah! is that all?"
  4576. "Do tell me all about it."
  4577. "I can't explain the inexplicable, but you will soon see and
  4578. understand that geology has not yet learnt all it has to learn."
  4579. "Then let us go," I answered quickly.
  4580. "No, Axel; the open air might be bad for you."
  4581. "Open air?"
  4582. "Yes; the wind is rather strong. You must not expose yourself."
  4583. "But I assure you I am perfectly well."
  4584. "A little patience, my nephew. A relapse might get us into trouble,
  4585. and we have no time to lose, for the voyage may be a long one."
  4586. "The voyage!"
  4587. "Yes, rest to-day, and to-morrow we will set sail."
  4588. "Set sail!"--and I almost leaped up.
  4589. What did it all mean? Had we a river, a lake, a sea to depend upon?
  4590. Was there a ship at our disposal in some underground harbour?
  4591. My curiosity was highly excited, my uncle vainly tried to restrain
  4592. me. When he saw that my impatience was doing me harm, he yielded.
  4593. I dressed in haste. For greater safety I wrapped myself in a blanket,
  4594. and came out of the grotto.
  4595. CHAPTER XXX.
  4596. A NEW MARE INTERNUM
  4597. At first I could hardly see anything. My eyes, unaccustomed to the
  4598. light, quickly closed. When I was able to reopen them, I stood more
  4599. stupefied even than surprised.
  4600. "The sea!" I cried.
  4601. "Yes," my uncle replied, "the Liedenbrock Sea; and I don't suppose
  4602. any other discoverer will ever dispute my claim to name it after
  4603. myself as its first discoverer."
  4604. A vast sheet of water, the commencement of a lake or an ocean, spread
  4605. far away beyond the range of the eye, reminding me forcibly of that
  4606. open sea which drew from Xenophon's ten thousand Greeks, after their
  4607. long retreat, the simultaneous cry, "Thalatta! thalatta!" the sea!
  4608. the sea! The deeply indented shore was lined with a breadth of fine
  4609. shining sand, softly lapped by the waves, and strewn with the small
  4610. shells which had been inhabited by the first of created beings. The
  4611. waves broke on this shore with the hollow echoing murmur peculiar to
  4612. vast inclosed spaces. A light foam flew over the waves before the
  4613. breath of a moderate breeze, and some of the spray fell upon my face.
  4614. On this slightly inclining shore, about a hundred fathoms from the
  4615. limit of the waves, came down the foot of a huge wall of vast cliffs,
  4616. which rose majestically to an enormous height. Some of these,
  4617. dividing the beach with their sharp spurs, formed capes and
  4618. promontories, worn away by the ceaseless action of the surf. Farther
  4619. on the eye discerned their massive outline sharply defined against
  4620. the hazy distant horizon.
  4621. It was quite an ocean, with the irregular shores of earth, but desert
  4622. and frightfully wild in appearance.
  4623. If my eyes were able to range afar over this great sea, it was
  4624. because a peculiar light brought to view every detail of it. It was
  4625. not the light of the sun, with his dazzling shafts of brightness and
  4626. the splendour of his rays; nor was it the pale and uncertain shimmer
  4627. of the moonbeams, the dim reflection of a nobler body of light. No;
  4628. the illuminating power of this light, its trembling diffusiveness,
  4629. its bright, clear whiteness, and its low temperature, showed that it
  4630. must be of electric origin. It was like an aurora borealis, a
  4631. continuous cosmical phenomenon, filling a cavern of sufficient extent
  4632. to contain an ocean.
  4633. The vault that spanned the space above, the sky, if it could be
  4634. called so, seemed composed of vast plains of cloud, shifting and
  4635. variable vapours, which by their condensation must at certain times
  4636. fall in torrents of rain. I should have thought that under so
  4637. powerful a pressure of the atmosphere there could be no evaporation;
  4638. and yet, under a law unknown to me, there were broad tracts of vapour
  4639. suspended in the air. But then 'the weather was fine.' The play of
  4640. the electric light produced singular effects upon the upper strata of
  4641. cloud. Deep shadows reposed upon their lower wreaths; and often,
  4642. between two separated fields of cloud, there glided down a ray of
  4643. unspeakable lustre. But it was not solar light, and there was no
  4644. heat. The general effect was sad, supremely melancholy. Instead of
  4645. the shining firmament, spangled with its innumerable stars, shining
  4646. singly or in clusters, I felt that all these subdued and shaded
  4647. lights were ribbed in by vast walls of granite, which seemed to
  4648. overpower me with their weight, and that all this space, great as it
  4649. was, would not be enough for the march of the humblest of satellites.
  4650. Then I remembered the theory of an English captain, who likened the
  4651. earth to a vast hollow sphere, in the interior of which the air
  4652. became luminous because of the vast pressure that weighed upon it;
  4653. while two stars, Pluto and Proserpine, rolled within upon the circuit
  4654. of their mysterious orbits.
  4655. We were in reality shut up inside an immeasurable excavation. Its
  4656. width could not be estimated, since the shore ran widening as far as
  4657. eye could reach, nor could its length, for the dim horizon bounded
  4658. the new. As for its height, it must have been several leagues. Where
  4659. this vault rested upon its granite base no eye could tell; but there
  4660. was a cloud hanging far above, the height of which we estimated at
  4661. 12,000 feet, a greater height than that of any terrestrial vapour,
  4662. and no doubt due to the great density of the air.
  4663. The word cavern does not convey any idea of this immense space; words
  4664. of human tongue are inadequate to describe the discoveries of him who
  4665. ventures into the deep abysses of earth.
  4666. Besides I could not tell upon what geological theory to account for
  4667. the existence of such an excavation. Had the cooling of the globe
  4668. produced it? I knew of celebrated caverns from the descriptions of
  4669. travellers, but had never heard of any of such dimensions as this.
  4670. If the grotto of Guachara, in Colombia, visited by Humboldt, had not
  4671. given up the whole of the secret of its depth to the philosopher, who
  4672. investigated it to the depth of 2,500 feet, it probably did not
  4673. extend much farther. The immense mammoth cave in Kentucky is of
  4674. gigantic proportions, since its vaulted roof rises five hundred feet
  4675. [1] above the level of an unfathomable lake and travellers have
  4676. explored its ramifications to the extent of forty miles. But what
  4677. were these cavities compared to that in which I stood with wonder and
  4678. admiration, with its sky of luminous vapours, its bursts of electric
  4679. light, and a vast sea filling its bed? My imagination fell powerless
  4680. before such immensity.
  4681. I gazed upon these wonders in silence. Words failed me to express my
  4682. feelings. I felt as if I was in some distant planet Uranus or
  4683. Neptune--and in the presence of phenomena of which my terrestrial
  4684. experience gave me no cognisance. For such novel sensations, new words
  4685. were wanted; and my imagination failed to supply them. I gazed, I
  4686. thought, I admired, with a stupefaction mingled with a certain amount of
  4687. fear.
  4688. The unforeseen nature of this spectacle brought back the colour to my
  4689. cheeks. I was under a new course of treatment with the aid of
  4690. astonishment, and my convalescence was promoted by this novel system
  4691. of therapeutics; besides, the dense and breezy air invigorated me,
  4692. supplying more oxygen to my lungs.
  4693. It will be easily conceived that after an imprisonment of forty seven
  4694. days in a narrow gallery it was the height of physical enjoyment to
  4695. breathe a moist air impregnated with saline particles.
  4696. [1] One hundred and twenty. (Trans.)
  4697. I was delighted to leave my dark grotto. My uncle, already familiar
  4698. with these wonders, had ceased to feel surprise.
  4699. "You feel strong enough to walk a little way now?" he asked.
  4700. "Yes, certainly; and nothing could be more delightful."
  4701. "Well, take my arm, Axel, and let us follow the windings of the
  4702. shore."
  4703. I eagerly accepted, and we began to coast along this new sea. On the
  4704. left huge pyramids of rock, piled one upon another, produced a
  4705. prodigious titanic effect. Down their sides flowed numberless
  4706. waterfalls, which went on their way in brawling but pellucid streams.
  4707. A few light vapours, leaping from rock to rock, denoted the place of
  4708. hot springs; and streams flowed softly down to the common basin,
  4709. gliding down the gentle slopes with a softer murmur.
  4710. Amongst these streams I recognised our faithful travelling companion,
  4711. the Hansbach, coming to lose its little volume quietly in the mighty
  4712. sea, just as if it had done nothing else since the beginning of the
  4713. world.
  4714. "We shall see it no more," I said, with a sigh.
  4715. "What matters," replied the philosopher, "whether this or another
  4716. serves to guide us?"
  4717. I thought him rather ungrateful.
  4718. But at that moment my attention was drawn to an unexpected sight. At
  4719. a distance of five hundred paces, at the turn of a high promontory,
  4720. appeared a high, tufted, dense forest. It was composed of trees of
  4721. moderate height, formed like umbrellas, with exact geometrical
  4722. outlines. The currents of wind seemed to have had no effect upon
  4723. their shape, and in the midst of the windy blasts they stood unmoved
  4724. and firm, just like a clump of petrified cedars.
  4725. I hastened forward. I could not give any name to these singular
  4726. creations. Were they some of the two hundred thousand species of
  4727. vegetables known hitherto, and did they claim a place of their own in
  4728. the lacustrine flora? No; when we arrived under their shade my
  4729. surprise turned into admiration. There stood before me productions of
  4730. earth, but of gigantic stature, which my uncle immediately named.
  4731. "It is only a forest of mushrooms," said he.
  4732. And he was right. Imagine the large development attained by these
  4733. plants, which prefer a warm, moist climate. I knew that the
  4734. _Lycopodon giganteum_ attains, according to Bulliard, a circumference
  4735. of eight or nine feet; but here were pale mushrooms, thirty to forty
  4736. feet high, and crowned with a cap of equal diameter. There they stood
  4737. in thousands. No light could penetrate between their huge cones, and
  4738. complete darkness reigned beneath those giants; they formed
  4739. settlements of domes placed in close array like the round, thatched
  4740. roofs of a central African city.
  4741. Yet I wanted to penetrate farther underneath, though a chill fell
  4742. upon me as soon as I came under those cellular vaults. For half an
  4743. hour we wandered from side to side in the damp shades, and it was a
  4744. comfortable and pleasant change to arrive once more upon the sea
  4745. shore.
  4746. But the subterranean vegetation was not confined to these fungi.
  4747. Farther on rose groups of tall trees of colourless foliage and easy
  4748. to recognise. They were lowly shrubs of earth, here attaining
  4749. gigantic size; lycopodiums, a hundred feet high; the huge sigillaria,
  4750. found in our coal mines; tree ferns, as tall as our fir-trees in
  4751. northern latitudes; lepidodendra, with cylindrical forked stems,
  4752. terminated by long leaves, and bristling with rough hairs like those
  4753. of the cactus.
  4754. "Wonderful, magnificent, splendid!" cried my uncle. "Here is the
  4755. entire flora of the second period of the world--the transition
  4756. period. These, humble garden plants with us, were tall trees in the
  4757. early ages. Look, Axel, and admire it all. Never had botanist such a
  4758. feast as this!"
  4759. "You are right, my uncle. Providence seems to have preserved in this
  4760. immense conservatory the antediluvian plants which the wisdom of
  4761. philosophers has so sagaciously put together again."
  4762. "It is a conservatory, Axel; but is it not also a menagerie?"
  4763. "Surely not a menagerie!"
  4764. "Yes; no doubt of it. Look at that dust under your feet; see the
  4765. bones scattered on the ground."
  4766. "So there are!" I cried; "bones of extinct animals."
  4767. I had rushed upon these remains, formed of indestructible phosphates
  4768. of lime, and without hesitation I named these monstrous bones, which
  4769. lay scattered about like decayed trunks of trees.
  4770. "Here is the lower jaw of a mastodon," [1] I said. "These are the
  4771. molar teeth of the deinotherium; this femur must have belonged to the
  4772. greatest of those beasts, the megatherium. It certainly is a
  4773. menagerie, for these remains were not brought here by a deluge. The
  4774. animals to which they belonged roamed on the shores of this
  4775. subterranean sea, under the shade of those arborescent trees. Here
  4776. are entire skeletons. And yet I cannot understand the appearance of
  4777. these quadrupeds in a granite cavern."
  4778. [1] These animals belonged to a late geological period, the Pliocene,
  4779. just before the glacial epoch, and therefore could have no connection
  4780. with the carboniferous vegetation. (Trans.)
  4781. "Why?"
  4782. "Because animal life existed upon the earth only in the secondary
  4783. period, when a sediment of soil had been deposited by the rivers, and
  4784. taken the place of the incandescent rocks of the primitive period."
  4785. "Well, Axel, there is a very simple answer to your objection that
  4786. this soil is alluvial."
  4787. "What! at such a depth below the surface of the earth?"
  4788. "No doubt; and there is a geological explanation of the fact. At a
  4789. certain period the earth consisted only of an elastic crust or bark,
  4790. alternately acted on by forces from above or below, according to the
  4791. laws of attraction and gravitation. Probably there were subsidences
  4792. of the outer crust, when a portion of the sedimentary deposits was
  4793. carried down sudden openings."
  4794. "That may be," I replied; "but if there have been creatures now
  4795. extinct in these underground regions, why may not some of those
  4796. monsters be now roaming through these gloomy forests, or hidden
  4797. behind the steep crags?"
  4798. And as this unpleasant notion got hold of me, I surveyed with anxious
  4799. scrutiny the open spaces before me; but no living creature appeared
  4800. upon the barren strand.
  4801. I felt rather tired, and went to sit down at the end of a promontory,
  4802. at the foot of which the waves came and beat themselves into spray.
  4803. Thence my eye could sweep every part of the bay; within its extremity
  4804. a little harbour was formed between the pyramidal cliffs, where the
  4805. still waters slept untouched by the boisterous winds. A brig and two
  4806. or three schooners might have moored within it in safety. I almost
  4807. fancied I should presently see some ship issue from it, full sail,
  4808. and take to the open sea under the southern breeze.
  4809. But this illusion lasted a very short time. We were the only living
  4810. creatures in this subterranean world. When the wind lulled, a deeper
  4811. silence than that of the deserts fell upon the arid, naked rocks, and
  4812. weighed upon the surface of the ocean. I then desired to pierce the
  4813. distant haze, and to rend asunder the mysterious curtain that hung
  4814. across the horizon. Anxious queries arose to my lips. Where did that
  4815. sea terminate? Where did it lead to? Should we ever know anything
  4816. about its opposite shores?
  4817. My uncle made no doubt about it at all; I both desired and feared.
  4818. After spending an hour in the contemplation of this marvellous
  4819. spectacle, we returned to the shore to regain the grotto, and I fell
  4820. asleep in the midst of the strangest thoughts.
  4821. CHAPTER XXXI.
  4822. PREPARATIONS FOR A VOYAGE OF DISCOVERY
  4823. The next morning I awoke feeling perfectly well. I thought a bathe
  4824. would do me good, and I went to plunge for a few minutes into the
  4825. waters of this mediterranean sea, for assuredly it better deserved
  4826. this name than any other sea.
  4827. I came back to breakfast with a good appetite. Hans was a good
  4828. caterer for our little household; he had water and fire at his
  4829. disposal, so that he was able to vary our bill of fare now and then.
  4830. For dessert he gave us a few cups of coffee, and never was coffee so
  4831. delicious.
  4832. "Now," said my uncle, "now is the time for high tide, and we must not
  4833. lose the opportunity to study this phenomenon."
  4834. "What! the tide!" I cried. "Can the influence of the sun and moon be
  4835. felt down here?"
  4836. "Why not? Are not all bodies subject throughout their mass to the
  4837. power of universal attraction? This mass of water cannot escape the
  4838. general law. And in spite of the heavy atmospheric pressure on the
  4839. surface, you will see it rise like the Atlantic itself."
  4840. At the same moment we reached the sand on the shore, and the waves
  4841. were by slow degrees encroaching on the shore.
  4842. "Here is the tide rising," I cried.
  4843. "Yes, Axel; and judging by these ridges of foam, you may observe that
  4844. the sea will rise about twelve feet."
  4845. "This is wonderful," I said.
  4846. "No; it is quite natural."
  4847. "You may say so, uncle; but to me it is most extraordinary, and I can
  4848. hardly believe my eyes. Who would ever have imagined, under this
  4849. terrestrial crust, an ocean with ebbing and flowing tides, with winds
  4850. and storms?"
  4851. "Well," replied my uncle, "is there any scientific reason against it?"
  4852. "No; I see none, as soon as the theory of central heat is given up."
  4853. "So then, thus far," he answered, "the theory of Sir Humphry Davy is
  4854. confirmed."
  4855. "Evidently it is; and now there is no reason why there should not be
  4856. seas and continents in the interior of the earth."
  4857. "No doubt," said my uncle; "and inhabited too."
  4858. "To be sure," said I; "and why should not these waters yield to us
  4859. fishes of unknown species?"
  4860. "At any rate," he replied, "we have not seen any yet."
  4861. "Well, let us make some lines, and see if the bait will draw here as
  4862. it does in sublunary regions."
  4863. "We will try, Axel, for we must penetrate all secrets of these newly
  4864. discovered regions."
  4865. "But where are we, uncle? for I have not yet asked you that question,
  4866. and your instruments must be able to furnish the answer."
  4867. "Horizontally, three hundred and fifty leagues from Iceland."
  4868. "So much as that?"
  4869. "I am sure of not being a mile out of my reckoning."
  4870. "And does the compass still show south-east?"
  4871. "Yes; with a westerly deviation of nineteen degrees forty-five
  4872. minutes, just as above ground. As for its dip, a curious fact is
  4873. coming to light, which I have observed carefully: that the needle,
  4874. instead of dipping towards the pole as in the northern hemisphere, on
  4875. the contrary, rises from it."
  4876. "Would you then conclude," I said, "that the magnetic pole is
  4877. somewhere between the surface of the globe and the point where we
  4878. are?"
  4879. "Exactly so; and it is likely enough that if we were to reach the
  4880. spot beneath the polar regions, about that seventy-first degree where
  4881. Sir James Ross has discovered the magnetic pole to be situated, we
  4882. should see the needle point straight up. Therefore that mysterious
  4883. centre of attraction is at no great depth."
  4884. I remarked: "It is so; and here is a fact which science has scarcely
  4885. suspected."
  4886. "Science, my lad, has been built upon many errors; but they are
  4887. errors which it was good to fall into, for they led to the truth."
  4888. "What depth have we now reached?"
  4889. "We are thirty-five leagues below the surface."
  4890. "So," I said, examining the map, "the Highlands of Scotland are over
  4891. our heads, and the Grampians are raising their rugged summits above
  4892. us."
  4893. "Yes," answered the Professor laughing. "It is rather a heavy weight
  4894. to bear, but a solid arch spans over our heads. The great Architect
  4895. has built it of the best materials; and never could man have given it
  4896. so wide a stretch. What are the finest arches of bridges and the
  4897. arcades of cathedrals, compared with this far reaching vault, with a
  4898. radius of three leagues, beneath which a wide and tempest-tossed
  4899. ocean may flow at its ease?"
  4900. "Oh, I am not afraid that it will fall down upon my head. But now
  4901. what are your plans? Are you not thinking of returning to the surface
  4902. now?"
  4903. "Return! no, indeed! We will continue our journey, everything having
  4904. gone on well so far."
  4905. "But how are we to get down below this liquid surface?"
  4906. "Oh, I am not going to dive head foremost. But if all oceans are
  4907. properly speaking but lakes, since they are encompassed by land, of
  4908. course this internal sea will be surrounded by a coast of granite,
  4909. and on the opposite shores we shall find fresh passages opening."
  4910. "How long do you suppose this sea to be?"
  4911. "Thirty or forty leagues; so that we have no time to lose, and we
  4912. shall set sail to-morrow."
  4913. I looked about for a ship.
  4914. "Set sail, shall we? But I should like to see my boat first."
  4915. "It will not be a boat at all, but a good, well-made raft."
  4916. "Why," I said, "a raft would be just as hard to make as a boat, and I
  4917. don't see--"
  4918. "I know you don't see; but you might hear if you would listen. Don't
  4919. you hear the hammer at work? Hans is already busy at it."
  4920. "What, has he already felled the trees?"
  4921. "Oh, the trees were already down. Come, and you will see for
  4922. yourself."
  4923. After half an hour's walking, on the other side of the promontory
  4924. which formed the little natural harbour, I perceived Hans at work. In
  4925. a few more steps I was at his side. To my great surprise a
  4926. half-finished raft was already lying on the sand, made of a peculiar
  4927. kind of wood, and a great number of planks, straight and bent, and of
  4928. frames, were covering the ground, enough almost for a little fleet.
  4929. "Uncle, what wood is this?" I cried.
  4930. "It is fir, pine, or birch, and other northern coniferae, mineralised
  4931. by the action of the sea. It is called surturbrand, a variety of
  4932. brown coal or lignite, found chiefly in Iceland."
  4933. "But surely, then, like other fossil wood, it must be as hard as
  4934. stone, and cannot float?"
  4935. "Sometimes that may happen; some of these woods become true
  4936. anthracites; but others, such as this, have only gone through the
  4937. first stage of fossil transformation. Just look," added my uncle,
  4938. throwing into the sea one of those precious waifs.
  4939. The bit of wood, after disappearing, returned to the surface and
  4940. oscillated to and fro with the waves.
  4941. "Are you convinced?" said my uncle.
  4942. "I am quite convinced, although it is incredible!"
  4943. By next evening, thanks to the industry and skill of our guide, the
  4944. raft was made. It was ten feet by five; the planks of surturbrand,
  4945. braced strongly together with cords, presented an even surface, and
  4946. when launched this improvised vessel floated easily upon the waves of
  4947. the Liedenbrock Sea.
  4948. CHAPTER XXXII.
  4949. WONDERS OF THE DEEP
  4950. On the 13th of August we awoke early. We were now to begin to adopt a
  4951. mode of travelling both more expeditious and less fatiguing than
  4952. hitherto.
  4953. A mast was made of two poles spliced together, a yard was made of a
  4954. third, a blanket borrowed from our coverings made a tolerable sail.
  4955. There was no want of cordage for the rigging, and everything was well
  4956. and firmly made.
  4957. The provisions, the baggage, the instruments, the guns, and a good
  4958. quantity of fresh water from the rocks around, all found their proper
  4959. places on board; and at six the Professor gave the signal to embark.
  4960. Hans had fitted up a rudder to steer his vessel. He took the tiller,
  4961. and unmoored; the sail was set, and we were soon afloat. At the
  4962. moment of leaving the harbour, my uncle, who was tenaciously fond of
  4963. naming his new discoveries, wanted to give it a name, and proposed
  4964. mine amongst others.
  4965. "But I have a better to propose," I said: "Grauben. Let it be called
  4966. Port Gr�uben; it will look very well upon the map."
  4967. "Port Gr�uben let it be then."
  4968. And so the cherished remembrance of my Virlandaise became associated
  4969. with our adventurous expedition.
  4970. The wind was from the north-west. We went with it at a high rate of
  4971. speed. The dense atmosphere acted with great force and impelled us
  4972. swiftly on.
  4973. In an hour my uncle had been able to estimate our progress. At this
  4974. rate, he said, we shall make thirty leagues in twenty-four hours, and
  4975. we shall soon come in sight of the opposite shore.
  4976. I made no answer, but went and sat forward. The northern shore was
  4977. already beginning to dip under the horizon. The eastern and western
  4978. strands spread wide as if to bid us farewell. Before our eyes lay far
  4979. and wide a vast sea; shadows of great clouds swept heavily over its
  4980. silver-grey surface; the glistening bluish rays of electric light,
  4981. here and there reflected by the dancing drops of spray, shot out
  4982. little sheaves of light from the track we left in our rear. Soon we
  4983. entirely lost sight of land; no object was left for the eye to judge
  4984. by, and but for the frothy track of the raft, I might have thought we
  4985. were standing still.
  4986. About twelve, immense shoals of seaweeds came in sight. I was aware
  4987. of the great powers of vegetation that characterise these plants,
  4988. which grow at a depth of twelve thousand feet, reproduce themselves
  4989. under a pressure of four hundred atmospheres, and sometimes form
  4990. barriers strong enough to impede the course of a ship. But never, I
  4991. think, were such seaweeds as those which we saw floating in immense
  4992. waving lines upon the sea of Liedenbrock.
  4993. Our raft skirted the whole length of the fuci, three or four thousand
  4994. feet long, undulating like vast serpents beyond the reach of sight; I
  4995. found some amusement in tracing these endless waves, always thinking
  4996. I should come to the end of them, and for hours my patience was vying
  4997. with my surprise.
  4998. What natural force could have produced such plants, and what must
  4999. have been the appearance of the earth in the first ages of its
  5000. formation, when, under the action of heat and moisture, the vegetable
  5001. kingdom alone was developing on its surface?
  5002. Evening came, and, as on the previous day, I perceived no change in
  5003. the luminous condition of the air. It was a constant condition, the
  5004. permanency of which might be relied upon.
  5005. After supper I laid myself down at the foot of the mast, and fell
  5006. asleep in the midst of fantastic reveries.
  5007. Hans, keeping fast by the helm, let the raft run on, which, after
  5008. all, needed no steering, the wind blowing directly aft.
  5009. Since our departure from Port Gr�uben, Professor Liedenbrock had
  5010. entrusted the log to my care; I was to register every observation,
  5011. make entries of interesting phenomena, the direction of the wind, the
  5012. rate of sailing, the way we made--in a word, every particular of our
  5013. singular voyage.
  5014. I shall therefore reproduce here these daily notes, written, so to
  5015. speak, as the course of events directed, in order to furnish an exact
  5016. narrative of our passage.
  5017. _Friday, August 14_.--Wind steady, N.W. The raft makes rapid way in
  5018. a direct line. Coast thirty leagues to leeward. Nothing in sight
  5019. before us. Intensity of light the same. Weather fine; that is to say,
  5020. that the clouds are flying high, are light, and bathed in a white
  5021. atmosphere resembling silver in a state of fusion. Therm. 89� Fahr.
  5022. At noon Hans prepared a hook at the end of a line. He baited it with
  5023. a small piece of meat and flung it into the sea. For two hours
  5024. nothing was caught. Are these waters, then, bare of inhabitants? No,
  5025. there's a pull at the line. Hans draws it in and brings out a
  5026. struggling fish.
  5027. "A sturgeon," I cried; "a small sturgeon."
  5028. The Professor eyes the creature attentively, and his opinion differs
  5029. from mine.
  5030. The head of this fish was flat, but rounded in front, and the
  5031. anterior part of its body was plated with bony, angular scales; it
  5032. had no teeth, its pectoral fins were large, and of tail there was
  5033. none. The animal belonged to the same order as the sturgeon, but
  5034. differed from that fish in many essential particulars. After a short
  5035. examination my uncle pronounced his opinion.
  5036. "This fish belongs to an extinct family, of which only fossil traces
  5037. are found in the devonian formations."
  5038. "What!" I cried. "Have we taken alive an inhabitant of the seas of
  5039. primitive ages?"
  5040. "Yes; and you will observe that these fossil fishes have no identity
  5041. with any living species. To have in one's possession a living
  5042. specimen is a happy event for a naturalist."
  5043. "But to what family does it belong?"
  5044. "It is of the order of ganoids, of the family of the cephalaspidae;
  5045. and a species of pterichthys. But this one displays a peculiarity
  5046. confined to all fishes that inhabit subterranean waters. It is blind,
  5047. and not only blind, but actually has no eyes at all."
  5048. I looked: nothing could be more certain. But supposing it might be a
  5049. solitary case, we baited afresh, and threw out our line. Surely this
  5050. ocean is well peopled with fish, for in another couple of hours we
  5051. took a large quantity of pterichthydes, as well as of others
  5052. belonging to the extinct family of the dipterides, but of which my
  5053. uncle could not tell the species; none had organs of sight. This
  5054. unhoped-for catch recruited our stock of provisions.
  5055. Thus it is evident that this sea contains none but species known to
  5056. us in their fossil state, in which fishes as well as reptiles are the
  5057. less perfectly and completely organised the farther back their date
  5058. of creation.
  5059. Perhaps we may yet meet with some of those saurians which science has
  5060. reconstructed out of a bit of bone or cartilage. I took up the
  5061. telescope and scanned the whole horizon, and found it everywhere a
  5062. desert sea. We are far away removed from the shores.
  5063. I gaze upward in the air. Why should not some of the strange birds
  5064. restored by the immortal Cuvier again flap their 'sail-broad vans' in
  5065. this dense and heavy atmosphere? There are sufficient fish for their
  5066. support. I survey the whole space that stretches overhead; it is as
  5067. desert as the shore was.
  5068. Still my imagination carried me away amongst the wonderful
  5069. speculations of pal�ontology. Though awake I fell into a dream. I
  5070. thought I could see floating on the surface of the waters enormous
  5071. chelonia, pre-adamite tortoises, resembling floating islands. Over the
  5072. dimly lighted strand there trod the huge mammals of the first ages of
  5073. the world, the leptotherium (slender beast), found in the caverns of
  5074. Brazil; the merycotherium (ruminating beast), found in the 'drift' of
  5075. iceclad Siberia. Farther on, the pachydermatous lophiodon (crested
  5076. toothed), a gigantic tapir, hides behind the rocks to dispute its
  5077. prey with the anoplotherium (unarmed beast), a strange creature,
  5078. which seemed a compound of horse, rhinoceros, camel, and
  5079. hippopotamus. The colossal mastodon (nipple-toothed) twists and
  5080. untwists his trunk, and brays and pounds with his huge tusks the
  5081. fragments of rock that cover the shore; whilst the megatherium (huge
  5082. beast), buttressed upon his enormous hinder paws, grubs in the soil,
  5083. awaking the sonorous echoes of the granite rocks with his tremendous
  5084. roarings. Higher up, the protopitheca--the first monkey that
  5085. appeared on the globe--is climbing up the steep ascents. Higher yet,
  5086. the pterodactyle (wing-fingered) darts in irregular zigzags to and
  5087. fro in the heavy air. In the uppermost regions of the air immense
  5088. birds, more powerful than the cassowary, and larger than the ostrich,
  5089. spread their vast breadth of wings and strike with their heads the
  5090. granite vault that bounds the sky.
  5091. All this fossil world rises to life again in my vivid imagination. I
  5092. return to the scriptural periods or ages of the world, conventionally
  5093. called 'days,' long before the appearance of man, when the unfinished
  5094. world was as yet unfitted for his support. Then my dream backed even
  5095. farther still into the ages before the creation of living beings. The
  5096. mammals disappear, then the birds vanish, then the reptiles of the
  5097. secondary period, and finally the fish, the crustaceans, molluscs,
  5098. and articulated beings. Then the zoophytes of the transition period
  5099. also return to nothing. I am the only living thing in the world: all
  5100. life is concentrated in my beating heart alone. There are no more
  5101. seasons; climates are no more; the heat of the globe continually
  5102. increases and neutralises that of the sun. Vegetation becomes
  5103. accelerated. I glide like a shade amongst arborescent ferns, treading
  5104. with unsteady feet the coloured marls and the particoloured clays; I
  5105. lean for support against the trunks of immense conifers; I lie in the
  5106. shade of sphenophylla (wedge-leaved), asterophylla (star-leaved), and
  5107. lycopods, a hundred feet high.
  5108. Ages seem no more than days! I am passed, against my will, in
  5109. retrograde order, through the long series of terrestrial changes.
  5110. Plants disappear; granite rocks soften; intense heat converts solid
  5111. bodies into thick fluids; the waters again cover the face of the
  5112. earth; they boil, they rise in whirling eddies of steam; white and
  5113. ghastly mists wrap round the shifting forms of the earth, which by
  5114. imperceptible degrees dissolves into a gaseous mass, glowing fiery
  5115. red and white, as large and as shining as the sun.
  5116. And I myself am floating with wild caprice in the midst of this
  5117. nebulous mass of fourteen hundred thousand times the volume of the
  5118. earth into which it will one day be condensed, and carried forward
  5119. amongst the planetary bodies. My body is no longer firm and
  5120. terrestrial; it is resolved into its constituent atoms, subtilised,
  5121. volatilised. Sublimed into imponderable vapour, I mingle and am lost
  5122. in the endless foods of those vast globular volumes of vaporous
  5123. mists, which roll upon their flaming orbits through infinite space.
  5124. But is it not a dream? Whither is it carrying me? My feverish hand
  5125. has vainly attempted to describe upon paper its strange and wonderful
  5126. details. I have forgotten everything that surrounds me. The
  5127. Professor, the guide, the raft--are all gone out of my ken. An
  5128. illusion has laid hold upon me.
  5129. "What is the matter?" my uncle breaks in.
  5130. My staring eyes are fixed vacantly upon him.
  5131. "Take care, Axel, or you will fall overboard."
  5132. At that moment I felt the sinewy hand of Hans seizing me vigorously.
  5133. But for him, carried away by my dream, I should have thrown myself
  5134. into the sea.
  5135. "Is he mad?" cried the Professor.
  5136. "What is it all about?" at last I cried, returning to myself.
  5137. "Do you feel ill?" my uncle asked.
  5138. "No; but I have had a strange hallucination; it is over now. Is all
  5139. going on right?"
  5140. "Yes, it is a fair wind and a fine sea; we are sailing rapidly along,
  5141. and if I am not out in my reckoning, we shall soon land."
  5142. At these words I rose and gazed round upon the horizon, still
  5143. everywhere bounded by clouds alone.
  5144. CHAPTER XXXIII.
  5145. A BATTLE OF MONSTERS
  5146. _Saturday, August 15_.--The sea unbroken all round. No land in
  5147. sight. The horizon seems extremely distant.
  5148. My head is still stupefied with the vivid reality of my dream.
  5149. My uncle has had no dreams, but he is out of temper. He examines the
  5150. horizon all round with his glass, and folds his arms with the air of
  5151. an injured man.
  5152. I remark that Professor Liedenbrock has a tendency to relapse into an
  5153. impatient mood, and I make a note of it in my log. All my danger and
  5154. sufferings were needed to strike a spark of human feeling out of
  5155. him; but now that I am well his nature has resumed its sway. And yet,
  5156. what cause was there for anger? Is not the voyage prospering as
  5157. favourably as possible under the circumstances? Is not the raft
  5158. spinning along with marvellous speed?
  5159. "-You seem anxious, my uncle," I said, seeing him continually with
  5160. his glass to his eye.
  5161. "Anxious! No, not at all."
  5162. "Impatient, then?"
  5163. "One might be, with less reason than now."
  5164. "Yet we are going very fast."
  5165. "What does that signify? I am not complaining that the rate is slow,
  5166. but that the sea is so wide."
  5167. I then remembered that the Professor, before starting, had estimated
  5168. the length of this underground sea at thirty leagues. Now we had made
  5169. three times the distance, yet still the southern coast was not in
  5170. sight.
  5171. "We are not descending as we ought to be," the Professor declares.
  5172. "We are losing time, and the fact is, I have not come all this way to
  5173. take a little sail upon a pond on a raft."
  5174. He called this sea a pond, and our long voyage, taking a little sail!
  5175. "But," I remarked, "since we have followed the road that Saknussemm
  5176. has shown us--"
  5177. "That is just the question. Have we followed that road? Did
  5178. Saknussemm meet this sheet of water? Did he cross it? Has not the
  5179. stream that we followed led us altogether astray?"
  5180. "At any rate we cannot feel sorry to have come so far. This prospect
  5181. is magnificent, and--"
  5182. "But I don't care for prospects. I came with an object, and I mean to
  5183. attain it. Therefore don't talk to me about views and prospects."
  5184. I take this as my answer, and I leave the Professor to bite his lips
  5185. with impatience. At six in the evening Hans asks for his wages, and
  5186. his three rix dollars are counted out to him.
  5187. _Sunday, August 16. _--Nothing new. Weather unchanged. The wind
  5188. freshens. On awaking, my first thought was to observe the intensity
  5189. of the light. I was possessed with an apprehension lest the electric
  5190. light should grow dim, or fail altogether. But there seemed no reason
  5191. to fear. The shadow of the raft was clearly outlined upon the surface
  5192. of the waves.
  5193. Truly this sea is of infinite width. It must be as wide as the
  5194. Mediterranean or the Atlantic--and why not?
  5195. My uncle took soundings several times. He tied the heaviest of our
  5196. pickaxes to a long rope which he let down two hundred fathoms. No
  5197. bottom yet; and we had some difficulty in hauling up our plummet.
  5198. But when the pick was shipped again, Hans pointed out on its surface
  5199. deep prints as if it had been violently compressed between two hard
  5200. bodies.
  5201. I looked at the hunter.
  5202. "_T�nder,_" said he.
  5203. I could not understand him, and turned to my uncle who was entirely
  5204. absorbed in his calculations. I had rather not disturb him while he
  5205. is quiet. I return to the Icelander. He by a snapping motion of his
  5206. jaws conveys his ideas to me.
  5207. "Teeth!" I cried, considering the iron bar with more attention.
  5208. Yes, indeed, those are the marks of teeth imprinted upon the metal!
  5209. The jaws which they arm must be possessed of amazing strength. Is
  5210. there some monster beneath us belonging to the extinct races, more
  5211. voracious than the shark, more fearful in vastness than the whale? I
  5212. could not take my eyes off this indented iron bar. Surely will my
  5213. last night's dream be realised?
  5214. These thoughts agitated me all day, and my imagination scarcely
  5215. calmed down after several hours' sleep.
  5216. _Monday, August 17.--_ I am trying to recall the peculiar instincts
  5217. of the monsters of the pre-adamite world, who, coming next in
  5218. succession after the molluscs, the crustaceans and le fishes,
  5219. preceded the animals of mammalian race upon the earth. The world then
  5220. belonged to reptiles. Those monsters held the mastery in the seas of
  5221. the secondary period. They possessed a perfect organisation, gigantic
  5222. proportions, prodigious strength. The saurians of our day, the
  5223. alligators and the crocodiles, are but feeble reproductions of their
  5224. forefathers of primitive ages.
  5225. I shudder as I recall these monsters to my remembrance. No human eye
  5226. has ever beheld them living. They burdened this earth a thousand ages
  5227. before man appeared, but their fossil remains, found in the
  5228. argillaceous limestone called by the English the lias, have enabled
  5229. their colossal structure to be perfectly built up again and
  5230. anatomically ascertained.
  5231. I saw at the Hamburg museum the skeleton of one of these creatures
  5232. thirty feet in length. Am I then fated--I, a denizen of earth--to
  5233. be placed face to face with these representatives of long extinct
  5234. families? No; surely it cannot be! Yet the deep marks of conical
  5235. teeth upon the iron pick are certainly those of the crocodile.
  5236. My eyes are fearfully bent upon the sea. I dread to see one of these
  5237. monsters darting forth from its submarine caverns. I suppose
  5238. Professor Liedenbrock was of my opinion too, and even shared my
  5239. fears, for after having examined the pick, his eyes traversed the
  5240. ocean from side to side. What a very bad notion that was of his, I
  5241. thought to myself, to take soundings just here! He has disturbed some
  5242. monstrous beast in its remote den, and if we are not attacked on our
  5243. voyage--
  5244. I look at our guns and see that they are all right. My uncle notices
  5245. it, and looks on approvingly.
  5246. Already widely disturbed regions on the surface of the water indicate
  5247. some commotion below. The danger is approaching. We must be on the
  5248. look out.
  5249. _Tuesday, August 18. _--Evening came, or rather the time came when
  5250. sleep weighs down the weary eyelids, for there is no night here, and
  5251. the ceaseless light wearies the eyes with its persistency just as if
  5252. we were sailing under an arctic sun. Hans was at the helm. During his
  5253. watch I slept.
  5254. Two hours afterwards a terrible shock awoke me. The raft was heaved
  5255. up on a watery mountain and pitched down again, at a distance of
  5256. twenty fathoms.
  5257. "What is the matter?" shouted my uncle. "Have we struck land?"
  5258. Hans pointed with his finger at a dark mass six hundred yards away,
  5259. rising and falling alternately with heavy plunges. I looked and cried:
  5260. "It is an enormous porpoise."
  5261. "Yes," replied my uncle, "and there is a sea lizard of vast size."
  5262. "And farther on a monstrous crocodile. Look at its vast jaws and its
  5263. rows of teeth! It is diving down!"
  5264. "There's a whale, a whale!" cried the Professor. "I can see its great
  5265. fins. See how he is throwing out air and water through his blowers."
  5266. And in fact two liquid columns were rising to a considerable height
  5267. above the sea. We stood amazed, thunderstruck, at the presence of
  5268. such a herd of marine monsters. They were of supernatural dimensions;
  5269. the smallest of them would have crunched our raft, crew and all, at
  5270. one snap of its huge jaws.
  5271. Hans wants to tack to get away from this dangerous neighbourhood; but
  5272. he sees on the other hand enemies not less terrible; a tortoise forty
  5273. feet long, and a serpent of thirty, lifting its fearful head and
  5274. gleaming eyes above the flood.
  5275. Flight was out of the question now. The reptiles rose; they wheeled
  5276. around our little raft with a rapidity greater than that of express
  5277. trains. They described around us gradually narrowing circles. I took
  5278. up my rifle. But what could a ball do against the scaly armour with
  5279. which these enormous beasts were clad?
  5280. We stood dumb with fear. They approach us close: on one side the
  5281. crocodile, on the other the serpent. The remainder of the sea
  5282. monsters have disappeared. I prepare to fire. Hans stops me by a
  5283. gesture. The two monsters pass within a hundred and fifty yards of
  5284. the raft, and hurl themselves the one upon the other, with a fury
  5285. which prevents them from seeing us.
  5286. At three hundred yards from us the battle was fought. We could
  5287. distinctly observe the two monsters engaged in deadly conflict. But
  5288. it now seems to me as if the other animals were taking part in the
  5289. fray--the porpoise, the whale, the lizard, the tortoise. Every
  5290. moment I seem to see one or other of them. I point them to the
  5291. Icelander. He shakes his head negatively.
  5292. "_Tva,_" says he.
  5293. "What two? Does he mean that there are only two animals?"
  5294. "He is right," said my uncle, whose glass has never left his eye.
  5295. "Surely you must be mistaken," I cried.
  5296. "No: the first of those monsters has a porpoise's snout, a lizard's
  5297. head, a crocodile's teeth; and hence our mistake. It is the
  5298. ichthyosaurus (the fish lizard), the most terrible of the ancient
  5299. monsters of the deep."
  5300. "And the other?"
  5301. "The other is a plesiosaurus (almost lizard), a serpent, armoured
  5302. with the carapace and the paddles of a turtle; he is the dreadful
  5303. enemy of the other."
  5304. Hans had spoken truly. Two monsters only were creating all this
  5305. commotion; and before my eyes are two reptiles of the primitive
  5306. world. I can distinguish the eye of the ichthyosaurus glowing like a
  5307. red-hot coal, and as large as a man's head. Nature has endowed it
  5308. with an optical apparatus of extreme power, and capable of resisting
  5309. the pressure of the great volume of water in the depths it inhabits.
  5310. It has been appropriately called the saurian whale, for it has both
  5311. the swiftness and the rapid movements of this monster of our own day.
  5312. This one is not less than a hundred feet long, and I can judge of its
  5313. size when it sweeps over the waters the vertical coils of its tail.
  5314. Its jaw is enormous, and according to naturalists it is armed with no
  5315. less than one hundred and eighty-two teeth.
  5316. The plesiosaurus, a serpent with a cylindrical body and a short tail,
  5317. has four flappers or paddles to act like oars. Its body is entirely
  5318. covered with a thick armour of scales, and its neck, as flexible as a
  5319. swan's, rises thirty feet above the waves.
  5320. Those huge creatures attacked each other with the greatest animosity.
  5321. They heaved around them liquid mountains, which rolled even to our
  5322. raft and rocked it perilously. Twenty times we were near capsizing.
  5323. Hissings of prodigious force are heard. The two beasts are fast
  5324. locked together; I cannot distinguish the one from the other. The
  5325. probable rage of the conqueror inspires us with intense fear.
  5326. One hour, two hours, pass away. The struggle continues with unabated
  5327. ferocity. The combatants alternately approach and recede from our
  5328. raft. We remain motionless, ready to fire. Suddenly the ichthyosaurus
  5329. and the plesiosaurus disappear below, leaving a whirlpool eddying in
  5330. the water. Several minutes pass by while the fight goes on under
  5331. water.
  5332. All at once an enormous head is darted up, the head of the
  5333. plesiosaurus. The monster is wounded to death. I no longer see his
  5334. scaly armour. Only his long neck shoots up, drops again, coils and
  5335. uncoils, droops, lashes the waters like a gigantic whip, and writhes
  5336. like a worm that you tread on. The water is splashed for a long way
  5337. around. The spray almost blinds us. But soon the reptile's agony
  5338. draws to an end; its movements become fainter, its contortions cease
  5339. to be so violent, and the long serpentine form lies a lifeless log on
  5340. the labouring deep.
  5341. As for the ichthyosaurus--has he returned to his submarine cavern?
  5342. or will he reappear on the surface of the sea?
  5343. CHAPTER XXXIV.
  5344. THE GREAT GEYSER
  5345. _Wednesday, August 19_.--Fortunately the wind blows violently, and
  5346. has enabled us to flee from the scene of the late terrible struggle.
  5347. Hans keeps at his post at the helm. My uncle, whom the absorbing
  5348. incidents of the combat had drawn away from his contemplations, began
  5349. again to look impatiently around him.
  5350. The voyage resumes its uniform tenor, which I don't care to break
  5351. with a repetition of such events as yesterday's.
  5352. Thursday, Aug. 20.--Wind N.N.E., unsteady and fitful. Temperature
  5353. high. Rate three and a half leagues an hour.
  5354. About noon a distant noise is heard. I note the fact without being
  5355. able to explain it. It is a continuous roar.
  5356. "In the distance," says the Professor, "there is a rock or islet,
  5357. against which the sea is breaking."
  5358. Hans climbs up the mast, but sees no breakers. The ocean' is smooth
  5359. and unbroken to its farthest limit.
  5360. Three hours pass away. The roarings seem to proceed from a very
  5361. distant waterfall.
  5362. I remark upon this to my uncle, who replies doubtfully: "Yes, I am
  5363. convinced that I am right." Are we, then, speeding forward to some
  5364. cataract which will cast us down an abyss? This method of getting on
  5365. may please the Professor, because it is vertical; but for my part I
  5366. prefer the more ordinary modes of horizontal progression.
  5367. At any rate, some leagues to the windward there must be some noisy
  5368. phenomenon, for now the roarings are heard with increasing loudness.
  5369. Do they proceed from the sky or the ocean?
  5370. I look up to the atmospheric vapours, and try to fathom their depths.
  5371. The sky is calm and motionless. The clouds have reached the utmost
  5372. limit of the lofty vault, and there lie still bathed in the bright
  5373. glare of the electric light. It is not there that we must seek for
  5374. the cause of this phenomenon. Then I examine the horizon, which is
  5375. unbroken and clear of all mist. There is no change in its aspect. But
  5376. if this noise arises from a fall, a cataract, if all this ocean flows
  5377. away headlong into a lower basin yet, if that deafening roar is
  5378. produced by a mass of falling water, the current must needs
  5379. accelerate, and its increasing speed will give me the measure of the
  5380. peril that threatens us. I consult the current: there is none. I
  5381. throw an empty bottle into the sea: it lies still.
  5382. About four Hans rises, lays hold of the mast, climbs to its top.
  5383. Thence his eye sweeps a large area of sea, and it is fixed upon a
  5384. point. His countenance exhibits no surprise, but his eye is immovably
  5385. steady.
  5386. "He sees something," says my uncle.
  5387. "I believe he does."
  5388. Hans comes down, then stretches his arm to the south, saying:
  5389. "_Dere nere!_"
  5390. "Down there?" repeated my uncle.
  5391. Then, seizing his glass, he gazes attentively for a minute, which
  5392. seems to me an age.
  5393. "Yes, yes!" he cried. "I see a vast inverted cone rising from the
  5394. surface."
  5395. "Is it another sea beast?"
  5396. "Perhaps it is."
  5397. "Then let us steer farther westward, for we know something of the
  5398. danger of coming across monsters of that sort."
  5399. "Let us go straight on," replied my uncle.
  5400. I appealed to Hans. He maintained his course inflexibly.
  5401. Yet, if at our present distance from the animal, a distance of twelve
  5402. leagues at the least, the column of water driven through its blowers
  5403. may be distinctly seen, it must needs be of vast size. The commonest
  5404. prudence would counsel immediate flight; but we did not come so far
  5405. to be prudent.
  5406. Imprudently, therefore, we pursue our way. The nearer we approach,
  5407. the higher mounts the jet of water. What monster can possibly fill
  5408. itself with such a quantity of water, and spurt it up so continuously?
  5409. At eight in the evening we are not two leagues distant from it. Its
  5410. body--dusky, enormous, hillocky--lies spread upon the sea like an
  5411. islet. Is it illusion or fear? Its length seems to me a couple of
  5412. thousand yards. What can be this cetacean, which neither Cuvier nor
  5413. Blumenbach knew anything about? It lies motionless, as if asleep; the
  5414. sea seems unable to move it in the least; it is the waves that
  5415. undulate upon its sides. The column of water thrown up to a height of
  5416. five hundred feet falls in rain with a deafening uproar. And here are
  5417. we scudding like lunatics before the wind, to get near to a monster
  5418. that a hundred whales a day would not satisfy!
  5419. Terror seizes upon me. I refuse to go further. I will cut the
  5420. halliards if necessary! I am in open mutiny against the Professor,
  5421. who vouchsafes no answer.
  5422. Suddenly Hans rises, and pointing with his finger at the menacing
  5423. object, he says:
  5424. "_Holm._"
  5425. "An island!" cries my uncle.
  5426. "That's not an island!" I cried sceptically.
  5427. "It's nothing else," shouted the Professor, with a loud laugh.
  5428. "But that column of water?"
  5429. "_Geyser,_" said Hans.
  5430. "No doubt it is a geyser, like those in Iceland."
  5431. At first I protest against being so widely mistaken as to have taken
  5432. an island for a marine monster. But the evidence is against me, and I
  5433. have to confess my error. It is nothing worse than a natural
  5434. phenomenon.
  5435. As we approach nearer the dimensions of the liquid column become
  5436. magnificent. The islet resembles, with a most deceiving likeness, an
  5437. enormous cetacean, whose head dominates the waves at a height of
  5438. twenty yards. The geyser, a word meaning 'fury,' rises majestically
  5439. from its extremity. Deep and heavy explosions are heard from time to
  5440. time, when the enormous jet, possessed with more furious violence,
  5441. shakes its plumy crest, and springs with a bound till it reaches the
  5442. lowest stratum of the clouds. It stands alone. No steam vents, no hot
  5443. springs surround it, and all the volcanic power of the region is
  5444. concentrated here. Sparks of electric fire mingle with the dazzling
  5445. sheaf of lighted fluid, every drop of which refracts the prismatic
  5446. colours.
  5447. "Let us land," said the Professor.
  5448. "But we must carefully avoid this waterspout, which would sink our
  5449. raft in a moment."
  5450. Hans, steering with his usual skill, brought us to the other
  5451. extremity of the islet.
  5452. I leaped up on the rock; my uncle lightly followed, while our hunter
  5453. remained at his post, like a man too wise ever to be astonished.
  5454. We walked upon granite mingled with siliceous tufa. The soil shivers
  5455. and shakes under our feet, like the sides of an overheated boiler
  5456. filled with steam struggling to get loose. We come in sight of a
  5457. small central basin, out of which the geyser springs. I plunge a
  5458. register thermometer into the boiling water. It marks an intense heat
  5459. of 325�, which is far above the boiling point; therefore this water
  5460. issues from an ardent furnace, which is not at all in harmony with
  5461. Professor Liedenbrock's theories. I cannot help making the remark.
  5462. "Well," he replied, "how does that make against my doctrine?"
  5463. "Oh, nothing at all," I said, seeing that I was going in opposition
  5464. to immovable obstinacy.
  5465. Still I am constrained to confess that hitherto we have been
  5466. wonderfully favoured, and that for some reason unknown to myself we
  5467. have accomplished our journey under singularly favourable conditions
  5468. of temperature. But it seems manifest to me that some day we shall
  5469. reach a region where the central heat attains its highest limits, and
  5470. goes beyond a point that can be registered by our thermometers.
  5471. "That is what we shall see." So says the Professor, who, having named
  5472. this volcanic islet after his nephew, gives the signal to embark
  5473. again.
  5474. For some minutes I am still contemplating the geyser. I notice that
  5475. it throws up its column of water with variable force: sometimes
  5476. sending it to a great height, then again to a lower, which I
  5477. attribute to the variable pressure of the steam accumulated in its
  5478. reservoir.
  5479. At last we leave the island, rounding away past the low rocks on its
  5480. southern shore. Hans has taken advantage of the halt to refit his
  5481. rudder.
  5482. But before going any farther I make a few observations, to calculate
  5483. the distance we have gone over, and note them in my journal. We have
  5484. crossed two hundred and seventy leagues of sea since leaving Port
  5485. Gr�uben; and we are six hundred and twenty leagues from Iceland,
  5486. under England. [1]
  5487. [1] This distance carries the travellers as far as under the Pyrenees
  5488. if the league measures three miles. (Trans.)
  5489. CHAPTER XXXV.
  5490. AN ELECTRIC STORM
  5491. _Friday, August 21_.--On the morrow the magnificent geyser has
  5492. disappeared. The wind has risen, and has rapidly carried us away from
  5493. Axel Island. The roarings become lost in the distance.
  5494. The weather--if we may use that term--will change before long. The
  5495. atmosphere is charged with vapours, pervaded with the electricity
  5496. generated by the evaporation of saline waters. The clouds are sinking
  5497. lower, and assume an olive hue. The electric light can scarcely
  5498. penetrate through the dense curtain which has dropped over the
  5499. theatre on which the battle of the elements is about to be waged.
  5500. I feel peculiar sensations, like many creatures on earth at the
  5501. approach of violent atmospheric changes. The heavily voluted cumulus
  5502. clouds lower gloomily and threateningly; they wear that implacable
  5503. look which I have sometimes noticed at the outbreak of a great storm.
  5504. The air is heavy; the sea is calm.
  5505. In the distance the clouds resemble great bales of cotton, piled up
  5506. in picturesque disorder. By degrees they dilate, and gain in huge
  5507. size what they lose in number. Such is their ponderous weight that
  5508. they cannot rise from the horizon; but, obeying an impulse from
  5509. higher currents, their dense consistency slowly yields. The gloom
  5510. upon them deepens; and they soon present to our view a ponderous mass
  5511. of almost level surface. From time to time a fleecy tuft of mist,
  5512. with yet some gleaming light left upon it, drops down upon the dense
  5513. floor of grey, and loses itself in the opaque and impenetrable mass.
  5514. The atmosphere is evidently charged and surcharged with electricity.
  5515. My whole body is saturated; my hair bristles just as when you stand
  5516. upon an insulated stool under the action of an electrical machine. It
  5517. seems to me as if my companions, the moment they touched me, would
  5518. receive a severe shock like that from an electric eel.
  5519. At ten in the morning the symptoms of storm become aggravated. The
  5520. wind never lulls but to acquire increased strength; the vast bank of
  5521. heavy clouds is a huge reservoir of fearful windy gusts and rushing
  5522. storms.
  5523. I am loth to believe these atmospheric menaces, and yet I cannot help
  5524. muttering:
  5525. "Here's some very bad weather coming on."
  5526. The Professor made no answer. His temper is awful, to judge from the
  5527. working of his features, as he sees this vast length of ocean
  5528. unrolling before him to an indefinite extent. He can only spare time
  5529. to shrug his shoulders viciously.
  5530. "There's a heavy storm coming on," I cried, pointing towards the
  5531. horizon. "Those clouds seem as if they were going to crush the sea."
  5532. A deep silence falls on all around. The lately roaring winds are
  5533. hushed into a dead calm; nature seems to breathe no more, and to be
  5534. sinking into the stillness of death. On the mast already I see the
  5535. light play of a lambent St. Elmo's fire; the outstretched sail
  5536. catches not a breath of wind, and hangs like a sheet of lead. The
  5537. rudder stands motionless in a sluggish, waveless sea. But if we have
  5538. now ceased to advance why do we yet leave that sail loose, which at
  5539. the first shock of the tempest may capsize us in a moment?
  5540. "Let us reef the sail and cut the mast down!" I cried. "That will be
  5541. safest."
  5542. "No, no! Never!" shouted my impetuous uncle. "Never! Let the wind
  5543. catch us if it will! What I want is to get the least glimpse of rock
  5544. or shore, even if our raft should be smashed into shivers!"
  5545. The words were hardly out of his mouth when a sudden change took
  5546. place in the southern sky. The piled-up vapours condense into water;
  5547. and the air, put into violent action to supply the vacuum left by the
  5548. condensation of the mists, rouses itself into a whirlwind. It rushes
  5549. on from the farthest recesses of the vast cavern. The darkness
  5550. deepens; scarcely can I jot down a few hurried notes. The helm makes
  5551. a bound. My uncle falls full length; I creep close to him. He has
  5552. laid a firm hold upon a rope, and appears to watch with grim
  5553. satisfaction this awful display of elemental strife.
  5554. Hans stirs not. His long hair blown by the pelting storm, and laid
  5555. flat across his immovable countenance, makes him a strange figure;
  5556. for the end of each lock of loose flowing hair is tipped with little
  5557. luminous radiations. This frightful mask of electric sparks suggests
  5558. to me, even in this dizzy excitement, a comparison with pre-adamite
  5559. man, the contemporary of the ichthyosaurus and the megatherium. [1]
  5560. [1] Rather of the mammoth and the mastodon. (Trans.)
  5561. The mast yet holds firm. The sail stretches tight like a bubble ready
  5562. to burst. The raft flies at a rate that I cannot reckon, but not so
  5563. fast as the foaming clouds of spray which it dashes from side to side
  5564. in its headlong speed.
  5565. "The sail! the sail!" I cry, motioning to lower it.
  5566. "No!" replies my uncle.
  5567. "_Nej!_" repeats Hans, leisurely shaking his head.
  5568. But now the rain forms a rushing cataract in front of that horizon
  5569. toward which we are running with such maddening speed. But before it
  5570. has reached us the rain cloud parts asunder, the sea boils, and the
  5571. electric fires are brought into violent action by a mighty chemical
  5572. power that descends from the higher regions. The most vivid flashes
  5573. of lightning are mingled with the violent crash of continuous
  5574. thunder. Ceaseless fiery arrows dart in and out amongst the flying
  5575. thunder-clouds; the vaporous mass soon glows with incandescent heat;
  5576. hailstones rattle fiercely down, and as they dash upon our iron tools
  5577. they too emit gleams and flashes of lurid light. The heaving waves
  5578. resemble fiery volcanic hills, each belching forth its own interior
  5579. flames, and every crest is plumed with dancing fire. My eyes fail
  5580. under the dazzling light, my ears are stunned with the incessant
  5581. crash of thunder. I must be bound to the mast, which bows like a reed
  5582. before the mighty strength of the storm.
  5583. (Here my notes become vague and indistinct. I have only been able to
  5584. find a few which I seem to have jotted down almost unconsciously. But
  5585. their very brevity and their obscurity reveal the intensity of the
  5586. excitement which dominated me, and describe the actual position even
  5587. better than my memory could do.)
  5588. Sunday, 23.--Where are we? Driven forward with a swiftness that
  5589. cannot be measured.
  5590. The night was fearful; no abatement of the storm. The din and uproar
  5591. are incessant; our ears are bleeding; to exchange a word is
  5592. impossible.
  5593. The lightning flashes with intense brilliancy, and never seems to
  5594. cease for a moment. Zigzag streams of bluish white fire dash down
  5595. upon the sea and rebound, and then take an upward flight till they
  5596. strike the granite vault that overarches our heads. Suppose that
  5597. solid roof should crumble down upon our heads! Other flashes with
  5598. incessant play cross their vivid fires, while others again roll
  5599. themselves into balls of living fire which explode like bombshells,
  5600. but the music of which scarcely-adds to the din of the battle strife
  5601. that almost deprives us of our senses of hearing and sight; the limit
  5602. of intense loudness has been passed within which the human ear can
  5603. distinguish one sound from another. If all the powder magazines in
  5604. the world were to explode at once, we should hear no more than we do
  5605. now.
  5606. From the under surface of the clouds there are continual emissions of
  5607. lurid light; electric matter is in continual evolution from their
  5608. component molecules; the gaseous elements of the air need to be
  5609. slaked with moisture; for innumerable columns of water rush upwards
  5610. into the air and fall back again in white foam.
  5611. Whither are we flying? My uncle lies full length across the raft.
  5612. The heat increases. I refer to the thermometer; it indicates . . .
  5613. (the figure is obliterated).
  5614. _Monday, August 24._--Will there be an end to it? Is the atmospheric
  5615. condition, having once reached this density, to become final?
  5616. We are prostrated and worn out with fatigue. But Hans is as usual.
  5617. The raft bears on still to the south-east. We have made two hundred
  5618. leagues since we left Axel Island.
  5619. At noon the violence of the storm redoubles. We are obliged to secure
  5620. as fast as possible every article that belongs to our cargo. Each of
  5621. us is lashed to some part of the raft. The waves rise above our heads.
  5622. For three days we have never been able to make each other hear a
  5623. word. Our mouths open, our lips move, but not a word can be heard. We
  5624. cannot even make ourselves heard by approaching our mouth close to
  5625. the ear.
  5626. My uncle has drawn nearer to me. He has uttered a few words. They
  5627. seem to be 'We are lost'; but I am not sure.
  5628. At last I write down the words: "Let us lower the sail."
  5629. He nods his consent.
  5630. Scarcely has he lifted his head again before a ball of fire has
  5631. bounded over the waves and lighted on board our raft. Mast and sail
  5632. flew up in an instant together, and I saw them carried up to
  5633. prodigious height, resembling in appearance a pterodactyle, one of
  5634. those strong birds of the infant world.
  5635. We lay there, our blood running cold with unspeakable terror. The
  5636. fireball, half of it white, half azure blue, and the size of a
  5637. ten-inch shell, moved slowly about the raft, but revolving on its own
  5638. axis with astonishing velocity, as if whipped round by the force of
  5639. the whirlwind. Here it comes, there it glides, now it is up the
  5640. ragged stump of the mast, thence it lightly leaps on the provision
  5641. bag, descends with a light bound, and just skims the powder magazine.
  5642. Horrible! we shall be blown up; but no, the dazzling disk of
  5643. mysterious light nimbly leaps aside; it approaches Hans, who fixes
  5644. his blue eye upon it steadily; it threatens the head of my uncle, who
  5645. falls upon his knees with his head down to avoid it. And now my turn
  5646. comes; pale and trembling under the blinding splendour and the
  5647. melting heat, it drops at my feet, spinning silently round upon the
  5648. deck; I try to move my foot away, but cannot.
  5649. A suffocating smell of nitrogen fills the air, it enters the throat,
  5650. it fills the lungs. We suffer stifling pains.
  5651. Why am I unable to move my foot? Is it riveted to the planks? Alas!
  5652. the fall upon our fated raft of this electric globe has magnetised
  5653. every iron article on board. The instruments, the tools, our guns,
  5654. are clashing and clanking violently in their collisions with each
  5655. other; the nails of my boots cling tenaciously to a plate of iron let
  5656. into the timbers, and I cannot draw my foot away from the spot. At
  5657. last by a violent effort I release myself at the instant when the
  5658. ball in its gyrations was about to seize upon it, and carry me off my
  5659. feet ....
  5660. Ah! what a flood of intense and dazzling light! the globe has burst,
  5661. and we are deluged with tongues of fire!
  5662. Then all the light disappears. I could just see my uncle at full
  5663. length on the raft, and Hans still at his helm and spitting fire
  5664. under the action of the electricity which has saturated him.
  5665. But where are we going to? Where?
  5666. * * * *
  5667. _Tuesday, August 25._--I recover from a long swoon. The storm
  5668. continues to roar and rage; the lightnings dash hither and thither,
  5669. like broods of fiery serpents filling all the air. Are we still under
  5670. the sea? Yes, we are borne at incalculable speed. We have been
  5671. carried under England, under the channel, under France, perhaps under
  5672. the whole of Europe.
  5673. * * * *
  5674. A fresh noise is heard! Surely it is the sea breaking upon the rocks!
  5675. But then . . . .
  5676. CHAPTER XXXVI.
  5677. CALM PHILOSOPHIC DISCUSSIONS
  5678. Here I end what I may call my log, happily saved from the wreck, and
  5679. I resume my narrative as before.
  5680. What happened when the raft was dashed upon the rocks is more than I
  5681. can tell. I felt myself hurled into the waves; and if I escaped from
  5682. death, and if my body was not torn over the sharp edges of the rocks,
  5683. it was because the powerful arm of Hans came to my rescue.
  5684. The brave Icelander carried me out of the reach of the waves, over a
  5685. burning sand where I found myself by the side of my uncle.
  5686. Then he returned to the rocks, against which the furious waves were
  5687. beating, to save what he could. I was unable to speak. I was
  5688. shattered with fatigue and excitement; I wanted a whole hour to
  5689. recover even a little.
  5690. But a deluge of rain was still falling, though with that violence
  5691. which generally denotes the near cessation of a storm. A few
  5692. overhanging rocks afforded us some shelter from the storm. Hans
  5693. prepared some food, which I could not touch; and each of us,
  5694. exhausted with three sleepless nights, fell into a broken and painful
  5695. sleep.
  5696. The next day the weather was splendid. The sky and the sea had sunk
  5697. into sudden repose. Every trace of the awful storm had disappeared.
  5698. The exhilarating voice of the Professor fell upon my ears as I awoke;
  5699. he was ominously cheerful.
  5700. "Well, my boy," he cried, "have you slept well?"
  5701. Would not any one have thought that we were still in our cheerful
  5702. little house on the K�nigstrasse and that I was only just coming down
  5703. to breakfast, and that I was to be married to Gr�uben that day?
  5704. Alas! if the tempest had but sent the raft a little more east, we
  5705. should have passed under Germany, under my beloved town of Hamburg,
  5706. under the very street where dwelt all that I loved most in the world.
  5707. Then only forty leagues would have separated us! But they were forty
  5708. leagues perpendicular of solid granite wall, and in reality we were a
  5709. thousand leagues asunder!
  5710. All these painful reflections rapidly crossed my mind before I could
  5711. answer my uncle's question.
  5712. "Well, now," he repeated, "won't you tell me how you have slept?"
  5713. "Oh, very well," I said. "I am only a little knocked up, but I shall
  5714. soon be better."
  5715. "Oh," says my uncle, "that's nothing to signify. You are only a
  5716. little bit tired."
  5717. "But you, uncle, you seem in very good spirits this morning."
  5718. "Delighted, my boy, delighted. We have got there."
  5719. "To our journey's end?"
  5720. "No; but we have got to the end of that endless sea. Now we shall go
  5721. by land, and really begin to go down! down! down!"
  5722. "But, my dear uncle, do let me ask you one question."
  5723. "Of course, Axel."
  5724. "How about returning?"
  5725. "Returning? Why, you are talking about the return before the arrival."
  5726. "No, I only want to know how that is to be managed."
  5727. "In the simplest way possible. When we have reached the centre of the
  5728. globe, either we shall find some new way to get back, or we shall
  5729. come back like decent folks the way we came. I feel pleased at the
  5730. thought that it is sure not to be shut against us."
  5731. "But then we shall have to refit the raft."
  5732. "Of course."
  5733. "Then, as to provisions, have we enough to last?"
  5734. "Yes; to be sure we have. Hans is a clever fellow, and I am sure he
  5735. must have saved a large part of our cargo. But still let us go and
  5736. make sure."
  5737. We left this grotto which lay open to every wind. At the same time I
  5738. cherished a trembling hope which was a fear as well. It seemed to me
  5739. impossible that the terrible wreck of the raft should not have
  5740. destroyed everything on board. On my arrival on the shore I found
  5741. Hans surrounded by an assemblage of articles all arranged in good
  5742. order. My uncle shook hands with him with a lively gratitude. This
  5743. man, with almost superhuman devotion, had been at work all the while
  5744. that we were asleep, and had saved the most precious of the articles
  5745. at the risk of his life.
  5746. Not that we had suffered no losses. For instance, our firearms; but
  5747. we might do without them. Our stock of powder had remained uninjured
  5748. after having risked blowing up during the storm.
  5749. "Well," cried the Professor, "as we have no guns we cannot hunt,
  5750. that's all."
  5751. "Yes, but how about the instruments?"
  5752. "Here is the aneroid, the most useful of all, and for which I would
  5753. have given all the others. By means of it I can calculate the depth
  5754. and know when we have reached the centre; without it we might very
  5755. likely go beyond, and come out at the antipodes!"
  5756. Such high spirits as these were rather too strong.
  5757. "But where is the compass? I asked.
  5758. "Here it is, upon this rock, in perfect condition, as well as the
  5759. thermometers and the chronometer. The hunter is a splendid fellow."
  5760. There was no denying it. We had all our instruments. As for tools and
  5761. appliances, there they all lay on the ground--ladders, ropes, picks,
  5762. spades, etc.
  5763. Still there was the question of provisions to be settled, and I
  5764. asked--"How are we off for provisions?"
  5765. The boxes containing these were in a line upon the shore, in a
  5766. perfect state of preservation; for the most part the sea had spared
  5767. them, and what with biscuits, salt meat, spirits, and salt fish, we
  5768. might reckon on four months' supply.
  5769. "Four months!" cried the Professor. "We have time to go and to
  5770. return; and with what is left I will give a grand dinner to my
  5771. friends at the Johann�um."
  5772. I ought by this time to have been quite accustomed to my uncle's
  5773. ways; yet there was always something fresh about him to astonish me.
  5774. "Now," said he, "we will replenish our supply of water with the rain
  5775. which the storm has left in all these granite basins; therefore we
  5776. shall have no reason to fear anything from thirst. As for the raft, I
  5777. will recommend Hans to do his best to repair it, although I don't
  5778. expect it will be of any further use to us."
  5779. "How so?" I cried.
  5780. "An idea of my own, my lad. I don't think we shall come out by the
  5781. way that we went in."
  5782. I stared at the Professor with a good deal of mistrust. I asked, was
  5783. he not touched in the brain? And yet there was method in his madness.
  5784. "And now let us go to breakfast," said he.
  5785. I followed him to a headland, after he had given his instructions to
  5786. the hunter. There preserved meat, biscuit, and tea made us an
  5787. excellent meal, one of the best I ever remember. Hunger, the fresh
  5788. air, the calm quiet weather, after the commotions we had gone
  5789. through, all contributed to give me a good appetite.
  5790. Whilst breakfasting I took the opportunity to put to my uncle the
  5791. question where we were now.
  5792. "That seems to me," I said, "rather difficult to make out."
  5793. "Yes, it is difficult," he said, "to calculate exactly; perhaps even
  5794. impossible, since during these three stormy days I have been unable
  5795. to keep any account of the rate or direction of the raft; but still
  5796. we may get an approximation."
  5797. "The last observation," I remarked, "was made on the island, when the
  5798. geyser was--"
  5799. "You mean Axel Island. Don't decline the honour of having given your
  5800. name to the first island ever discovered in the central parts of the
  5801. globe."
  5802. "Well," said I, "let it be Axel Island. Then we had cleared two
  5803. hundred and seventy leagues of sea, and we were six hundred leagues
  5804. from Iceland."
  5805. "Very well," answered my uncle; "let us start from that point and
  5806. count four days' storm, during which our rate cannot have been less
  5807. than eighty leagues in the twenty-four hours."
  5808. "That is right; and this would make three hundred leagues more."
  5809. "Yes, and the Liedenbrock sea would be six hundred leagues from shore
  5810. to shore. Surely, Axel, it may vie in size with the Mediterranean
  5811. itself."
  5812. "Especially," I replied, "if it happens that we have only crossed it
  5813. in its narrowest part. And it is a curious circumstance," I added,
  5814. "that if my computations are right, and we are nine hundred leagues
  5815. from Rejkiavik, we have now the Mediterranean above our head."
  5816. "That is a good long way, my friend. But whether we are under Turkey
  5817. or the Atlantic depends very much upon the question in what direction
  5818. we have been moving. Perhaps we have deviated."
  5819. "No, I think not. Our course has been the same all along, and I
  5820. believe this shore is south-east of Port Gr�uben."
  5821. "Well," replied my uncle, "we may easily ascertain this by consulting
  5822. the compass. Let us go and see what it says."
  5823. The Professor moved towards the rock upon which Hans had laid down
  5824. the instruments. He was gay and full of spirits; he rubbed his hands,
  5825. he studied his attitudes. I followed him, curious to know if I was
  5826. right in my estimate. As soon as we had arrived at the rock my uncle
  5827. took the compass, laid it horizontally, and questioned the needle,
  5828. which, after a few oscillations, presently assumed a fixed position.
  5829. My uncle looked, and looked, and looked again. He rubbed his eyes,
  5830. and then turned to me thunderstruck with some unexpected discovery.
  5831. "What is the matter?" I asked.
  5832. He motioned to me to look. An exclamation of astonishment burst from
  5833. me. The north pole of the needle was turned to what we supposed to be
  5834. the south. It pointed to the shore instead of to the open sea! I
  5835. shook the box, examined it again, it was in perfect condition. In
  5836. whatever position I placed the box the needle pertinaciously returned
  5837. to this unexpected quarter. Therefore there seemed no reason to doubt
  5838. that during the storm there had been a sudden change of wind
  5839. unperceived by us, which had brought our raft back to the shore which
  5840. we thought we had left so long a distance behind us.
  5841. CHAPTER XXXVII.
  5842. THE LIEDENBROCK MUSEUM OF GEOLOGY
  5843. How shall I describe the strange series of passions which in
  5844. succession shook the breast of Professor Liedenbrock? First
  5845. stupefaction, then incredulity, lastly a downright burst of rage.
  5846. Never had I seen the man so put out of countenance and so disturbed.
  5847. The fatigues of our passage across, the dangers met, had all to be
  5848. begun over again. We had gone backwards instead of forwards!
  5849. But my uncle rapidly recovered himself.
  5850. "Aha! will fate play tricks upon me? Will the elements lay plots
  5851. against me? Shall fire, air, and water make a combined attack against
  5852. me? Well, they shall know what a determined man can do. I will not
  5853. yield. I will not stir a single foot backwards, and it will be seen
  5854. whether man or nature is to have the upper hand!"
  5855. Erect upon the rock, angry and threatening, Otto Liedenbrock was a
  5856. rather grotesque fierce parody upon the fierce Achilles defying the
  5857. lightning. But I thought it my duty to interpose and attempt to lay
  5858. some restraint upon this unmeasured fanaticism.
  5859. "Just listen to me," I said firmly. "Ambition must have a limit
  5860. somewhere; we cannot perform impossibilities; we are not at all fit
  5861. for another sea voyage; who would dream of undertaking a voyage of
  5862. five hundred leagues upon a heap of rotten planks, with a blanket in
  5863. rags for a sail, a stick for a mast, and fierce winds in our teeth?
  5864. We cannot steer; we shall be buffeted by the tempests, and we should
  5865. be fools and madmen to attempt to cross a second time."
  5866. I was able to develop this series of unanswerable reasons for ten
  5867. minutes without interruption; not that the Professor was paying any
  5868. respectful attention to his nephew's arguments, but because he was
  5869. deaf to all my eloquence.
  5870. "To the raft!" he shouted.
  5871. Such was his only reply. It was no use for me to entreat, supplicate,
  5872. get angry, or do anything else in the way of opposition; it would
  5873. only have been opposing a will harder than the granite rock.
  5874. Hans was finishing the repairs of the raft. One would have thought
  5875. that this strange being was guessing at my uncle's intentions. With a
  5876. few more pieces of surturbrand he had refitted our vessel. A sail
  5877. already hung from the new mast, and the wind was playing in its
  5878. waving folds.
  5879. The Professor said a few words to the guide, and immediately he put
  5880. everything on board and arranged every necessary for our departure.
  5881. The air was clear--and the north-west wind blew steadily.
  5882. What could I do? Could I stand against the two? It was impossible? If
  5883. Hans had but taken my side! But no, it was not to be. The Icelander
  5884. seemed to have renounced all will of his own and made a vow to forget
  5885. and deny himself. I could get nothing out of a servant so feudalised,
  5886. as it were, to his master. My only course was to proceed.
  5887. I was therefore going with as much resignation as I could find to
  5888. resume my accustomed place on the raft, when my uncle laid his hand
  5889. upon my shoulder.
  5890. "We shall not sail until to-morrow," he said.
  5891. I made a movement intended to express resignation.
  5892. "I must neglect nothing," he said; "and since my fate has driven me
  5893. on this part of the coast, I will not leave it until I have examined
  5894. it."
  5895. To understand what followed, it must be borne in mind that, through
  5896. circumstances hereafter to be explained, we were not really where the
  5897. Professor supposed we were. In fact we were not upon the north shore
  5898. of the sea.
  5899. "Now let us start upon fresh discoveries," I said.
  5900. And leaving Hans to his work we started off together. The space
  5901. between the water and the foot of the cliffs was considerable. It
  5902. took half an hour to bring us to the wall of rock. We trampled under
  5903. our feet numberless shells of all the forms and sizes which existed
  5904. in the earliest ages of the world. I also saw immense carapaces more
  5905. than fifteen feet in diameter. They had been the coverings of those
  5906. gigantic glyptodons or armadilloes of the pleiocene period, of which
  5907. the modern tortoise is but a miniature representative. [1] The soil
  5908. was besides this scattered with stony fragments, boulders rounded by
  5909. water action, and ridged up in successive lines. I was therefore led
  5910. to the conclusion that at one time the sea must have covered the
  5911. ground on which we were treading. On the loose and scattered rocks,
  5912. now out of the reach of the highest tides, the waves had left
  5913. manifest traces of their power to wear their way in the hardest stone.
  5914. This might up to a certain point explain the existence of an ocean
  5915. forty leagues beneath the surface of the globe. But in my opinion
  5916. this liquid mass would be lost by degrees farther and farther within
  5917. the interior of the earth, and it certainly had its origin in the
  5918. waters of the ocean overhead, which had made their way hither through
  5919. some fissure. Yet it must be believed that that fissure is now
  5920. closed, and that all this cavern or immense reservoir was filled in a
  5921. very short time. Perhaps even this water, subjected to the fierce
  5922. action of central heat, had partly been resolved into vapour. This
  5923. would explain the existence of those clouds suspended over our heads
  5924. and the development of that electricity which raised such tempests
  5925. within the bowels of the earth.
  5926. This theory of the phenomena we had witnessed seemed satisfactory to
  5927. me; for however great and stupendous the phenomena of nature, fixed
  5928. physical laws will or may always explain them.
  5929. We were therefore walking upon sedimentary soil, the deposits of the
  5930. waters of former ages. The Professor was carefully examining every
  5931. little fissure in the rocks. Wherever he saw a hole he always wanted
  5932. to know the depth of it. To him this was important.
  5933. We had traversed the shores of the Liedenbrock sea for a mile when we
  5934. observed a sudden change in the appearance of the soil. It seemed
  5935. upset, contorted, and convulsed by a violent upheaval of the lower
  5936. strata. In many places depressions or elevations gave witness to some
  5937. tremendous power effecting the dislocation of strata.
  5938. [1] The glyptodon and armadillo are mammalian; the tortoise is a
  5939. chelonian, a reptile, distinct classes of the animal kingdom;
  5940. therefore the latter cannot be a representative of the former.
  5941. (Trans.)
  5942. We moved with difficulty across these granite fissures and chasms
  5943. mingled with silex, crystals of quartz, and alluvial deposits, when a
  5944. field, nay, more than a field, a vast plain, of bleached bones lay
  5945. spread before us. It seemed like an immense cemetery, where the
  5946. remains of twenty ages mingled their dust together. Huge mounds of
  5947. bony fragments rose stage after stage in the distance. They undulated
  5948. away to the limits of the horizon, and melted in the distance in a
  5949. faint haze. There within three square miles were accumulated the
  5950. materials for a complete history of the animal life of ages, a
  5951. history scarcely outlined in the too recent strata of the inhabited
  5952. world.
  5953. But an impatient curiosity impelled our steps; crackling and
  5954. rattling, our feet were trampling on the remains of prehistoric
  5955. animals and interesting fossils, the possession of which is a matter
  5956. of rivalry and contention between the museums of great cities. A
  5957. thousand Cuviers could never have reconstructed the organic remains
  5958. deposited in this magnificent and unparalleled collection.
  5959. I stood amazed. My uncle had uplifted his long arms to the vault
  5960. which was our sky; his mouth gaping wide, his eyes flashing behind
  5961. his shining spectacles, his head balancing with an up-and-down
  5962. motion, his whole attitude denoted unlimited astonishment. Here he
  5963. stood facing an immense collection of scattered leptotheria,
  5964. mericotheria, lophiodia, anoplotheria, megatheria, mastodons,
  5965. protopithec�, pterodactyles, and all sorts of extinct monsters here
  5966. assembled together for his special satisfaction. Fancy an
  5967. enthusiastic bibliomaniac suddenly brought into the midst of the
  5968. famous Alexandrian library burnt by Omar and restored by a miracle
  5969. from its ashes! just such a crazed enthusiast was my uncle, Professor
  5970. Liedenbrock.
  5971. But more was to come, when, with a rush through clouds of bone dust,
  5972. he laid his hand upon a bare skull, and cried with a voice trembling
  5973. with excitement:
  5974. "Axel! Axel! a human head!"
  5975. "A human skull?" I cried, no less astonished.
  5976. "Yes, nephew. Aha! M. Milne-Edwards! Ah! M. de Quatrefages, how I
  5977. wish you were standing here at the side of Otto Liedenbrock!"
  5978. CHAPTER XXXVIII.
  5979. THE PROFESSOR IN HIS CHAIR AGAIN
  5980. To understand this apostrophe of my uncle's, made to absent French
  5981. savants, it will be necessary to allude to an event of high
  5982. importance in a pal�ontological point of view, which had occurred a
  5983. little while before our departure.
  5984. On the 28th of March, 1863, some excavators working under the
  5985. direction of M. Boucher de Perthes, in the stone quarries of Moulin
  5986. Quignon, near Abbeville, in the department of Somme, found a human
  5987. jawbone fourteen feet beneath the surface. It was the first fossil of
  5988. this nature that had ever been brought to light. Not far distant were
  5989. found stone hatchets and flint arrow-heads stained and encased by
  5990. lapse of time with a uniform coat of rust.
  5991. The noise of this discovery was very great, not in France alone, but in
  5992. England and in Germany. Several savants of the French Institute, and
  5993. amongst them MM. Milne-Edwards and de Quatrefages, saw at once the
  5994. importance of this discovery, proved to demonstration the genuineness of
  5995. the bone in question, and became the most ardent defendants in what the
  5996. English called this 'trial of a jawbone.' To the geologists of the
  5997. United Kingdom, who believed in the certainty of the fact--Messrs.
  5998. Falconer, Busk, Carpenter, and others--scientific Germans were soon
  5999. joined, and amongst them the forwardest, the most fiery, and the most
  6000. enthusiastic, was my uncle Liedenbrock.
  6001. Therefore the genuineness of a fossil human relic of the quaternary
  6002. period seemed to be incontestably proved and admitted.
  6003. It is true that this theory met with a most obstinate opponent in M.
  6004. Elie de Beaumont. This high authority maintained that the soil of
  6005. Moulin Quignon was not diluvial at all, but was of much more recent
  6006. formation; and, agreeing in that with Cuvier, he refused to admit
  6007. that the human species could be contemporary with the animals of the
  6008. quaternary period. My uncle Liedenbrock, along with the great body of
  6009. the geologists, had maintained his ground, disputed, and argued,
  6010. until M. Elie de Beaumont stood almost alone in his opinion.
  6011. We knew all these details, but we were not aware that since our
  6012. departure the question had advanced to farther stages. Other similar
  6013. maxillaries, though belonging to individuals of various types and
  6014. different nations, were found in the loose grey soil of certain
  6015. grottoes in France, Switzerland, and Belgium, as well as weapons,
  6016. tools, earthen utensils, bones of children and adults. The existence
  6017. therefore of man in the quaternary period seemed to become daily more
  6018. certain.
  6019. Nor was this all. Fresh discoveries of remains in the pleiocene
  6020. formation had emboldened other geologists to refer back the human
  6021. species to a higher antiquity still. It is true that these remains
  6022. were not human bones, but objects bearing the traces of his
  6023. handiwork, such as fossil leg-bones of animals, sculptured and carved
  6024. evidently by the hand of man.
  6025. Thus, at one bound, the record of the existence of man receded far
  6026. back into the history of the ages past; he was a predecessor of the
  6027. mastodon; he was a contemporary of the southern elephant; he lived a
  6028. hundred thousand years ago, when, according to geologists, the
  6029. pleiocene formation was in progress.
  6030. Such then was the state of pal�ontological science, and what we knew
  6031. of it was sufficient to explain our behaviour in the presence of this
  6032. stupendous Golgotha. Any one may now understand the frenzied
  6033. excitement of my uncle, when, twenty yards farther on, he found
  6034. himself face to face with a primitive man!
  6035. It was a perfectly recognisable human body. Had some particular soil,
  6036. like that of the cemetery St. Michel, at Bordeaux, preserved it thus
  6037. for so many ages? It might be so. But this dried corpse, with its
  6038. parchment-like skin drawn tightly over the bony frame, the limbs
  6039. still preserving their shape, sound teeth, abundant hair, and finger
  6040. and toe nails of frightful length, this desiccated mummy startled us
  6041. by appearing just as it had lived countless ages ago. I stood mute
  6042. before this apparition of remote antiquity. My uncle, usually so
  6043. garrulous, was struck dumb likewise. We raised the body. We stood it
  6044. up against a rock. It seemed to stare at us out of its empty orbits.
  6045. We sounded with our knuckles his hollow frame.
  6046. After some moments' silence the Professor was himself again. Otto
  6047. Liedenbrock, yielding to his nature, forgot all the circumstances of
  6048. our eventful journey, forgot where we were standing, forgot the
  6049. vaulted cavern which contained us. No doubt he was in mind back again
  6050. in his Johann�um, holding forth to his pupils, for he assumed his
  6051. learned air; and addressing himself to an imaginary audience, he
  6052. proceeded thus:
  6053. "Gentlemen, I have the honour to introduce to you a man of the
  6054. quaternary or post-tertiary system. Eminent geologists have denied
  6055. his existence, others no less eminent have affirmed it. The St.
  6056. Thomases of pal�ontology, if they were here, might now touch him with
  6057. their fingers, and would be obliged to acknowledge their error. I am
  6058. quite aware that science has to be on its guard with discoveries of
  6059. this kind. I know what capital enterprising individuals like Barnum
  6060. have made out of fossil men. I have heard the tale of the kneepan of
  6061. Ajax, the pretended body of Orestes claimed to have been found by the
  6062. Spartans, and of the body of Asterius, ten cubits long, of which
  6063. Pausanias speaks. I have read the reports of the skeleton of Trapani,
  6064. found in the fourteenth century, and which was at the time identified
  6065. as that of Polyphemus; and the history of the giant unearthed in the
  6066. sixteenth century near Palermo. You know as well as I do, gentlemen,
  6067. the analysis made at Lucerne in 1577 of those huge bones which the
  6068. celebrated Dr. Felix Plater affirmed to be those of a giant nineteen
  6069. feet high. I have gone through the treatises of Cassanion, and all
  6070. those memoirs, pamphlets, answers, and rejoinders published
  6071. respecting the skeleton of Teutobochus, the invader of Gaul, dug out
  6072. of a sandpit in the Dauphin�, in 1613. In the eighteenth century I
  6073. would have stood up for Scheuchzer's pre-adamite man against Peter
  6074. Campet. I have perused a writing, entitled Gigan--"
  6075. Here my uncle's unfortunate infirmity met him--that of being unable
  6076. in public to pronounce hard words.
  6077. "The pamphlet entitled Gigan--"
  6078. He could get no further.
  6079. "Giganteo--"
  6080. It was not to be done. The unlucky word would not come out. At the
  6081. Johann�um there would have been a laugh.
  6082. "Gigantosteologie," at last the Professor burst out, between two
  6083. words which I shall not record here.
  6084. Then rushing on with renewed vigour, and with great animation:
  6085. "Yes, gentlemen, I know all these things, and more. I know that
  6086. Cuvier and Blumenbach have recognised in these bones nothing more
  6087. remarkable than the bones of the mammoth and other mammals of the
  6088. post-tertiary period. But in the presence of this specimen to doubt
  6089. would be to insult science. There stands the body! You may see it,
  6090. touch it. It is not a mere skeleton; it is an entire body, preserved
  6091. for a purely anthropological end and purpose."
  6092. I was good enough not to contradict this startling assertion.
  6093. "If I could only wash it in a solution of sulphuric acid," pursued my
  6094. uncle, "I should be able to clear it from all the earthy particles
  6095. and the shells which are incrusted about it. But I do not possess
  6096. that valuable solvent. Yet, such as it is, the body shall tell us its
  6097. own wonderful story."
  6098. Here the Professor laid hold of the fossil skeleton, and handled it
  6099. with the skill of a dexterous showman.
  6100. "You see," he said, "that it is not six feet long, and that we are
  6101. still separated by a long interval from the pretended race of giants.
  6102. As for the family to which it belongs, it is evidently Caucasian. It
  6103. is the white race, our own. The skull of this fossil is a regular
  6104. oval, or rather ovoid. It exhibits no prominent cheekbones, no
  6105. projecting jaws. It presents no appearance of that prognathism which
  6106. diminishes the facial angle. [1] Measure that angle. It is nearly
  6107. ninety degrees. But I will go further in my deductions, and I will
  6108. affirm that this specimen of the human family is of the Japhetic
  6109. race, which has since spread from the Indies to the Atlantic. Don't
  6110. smile, gentlemen."
  6111. Nobody was smiling; but the learned Professor was frequently
  6112. disturbed by the broad smiles provoked by his learned eccentricities.
  6113. "Yes," he pursued with animation, "this is a fossil man, the
  6114. contemporary of the mastodons whose remains fill this amphitheatre.
  6115. But if you ask me how he came there, how those strata on which he lay
  6116. slipped down into this enormous hollow in the globe, I confess I
  6117. cannot answer that question. No doubt in the post-tertiary period
  6118. considerable commotions were still disturbing the crust of the earth.
  6119. The long-continued cooling of the globe produced chasms, fissures,
  6120. clefts, and faults, into which, very probably, portions of the upper
  6121. earth may have fallen. I make no rash assertions; but there is the
  6122. man surrounded by his own works, by hatchets, by flint arrow-heads,
  6123. which are the characteristics of the stone age. And unless he came
  6124. here, like myself, as a tourist on a visit and as a pioneer of
  6125. science, I can entertain no doubt of the authenticity of his remote
  6126. origin."
  6127. [1] The facial angle is formed by two lines, one touching the brow
  6128. and the front teeth, the other from the orifice of the ear to the
  6129. lower line of the nostrils. The greater this angle, the higher
  6130. intelligence denoted by the formation of the skull. Prognathism is
  6131. that projection of the jaw-bones which sharpens or lessons this
  6132. angle, and which is illustrated in the negro countenance and in the
  6133. lowest savages.
  6134. The Professor ceased to speak, and the audience broke out into loud
  6135. and unanimous applause. For of course my uncle was right, and wiser
  6136. men than his nephew would have had some trouble to refute his
  6137. statements.
  6138. Another remarkable thing. This fossil body was not the only one in
  6139. this immense catacomb. We came upon other bodies at every step
  6140. amongst this mortal dust, and my uncle might select the most curious
  6141. of these specimens to demolish the incredulity of sceptics.
  6142. In fact it was a wonderful spectacle, that of these generations of
  6143. men and animals commingled in a common cemetery. Then one very
  6144. serious question arose presently which we scarcely dared to suggest.
  6145. Had all those creatures slided through a great fissure in the crust
  6146. of the earth, down to the shores of the Liedenbrock sea, when they
  6147. were dead and turning to dust, or had they lived and grown and died
  6148. here in this subterranean world under a false sky, just like
  6149. inhabitants of the upper earth? Until the present time we had seen
  6150. alive only marine monsters and fishes. Might not some living man,
  6151. some native of the abyss, be yet a wanderer below on this desert
  6152. strand?
  6153. CHAPTER XXXIX.
  6154. FOREST SCENERY ILLUMINATED BY ELECTRICITY
  6155. For another half hour we trod upon a pavement of bones. We pushed on,
  6156. impelled by our burning curiosity. What other marvels did this cavern
  6157. contain? What new treasures lay here for science to unfold? I was
  6158. prepared for any surprise, my imagination was ready for any
  6159. astonishment however astounding.
  6160. We had long lost sight of the sea shore behind the hills of bones.
  6161. The rash Professor, careless of losing his way, hurried me forward.
  6162. We advanced in silence, bathed in luminous electric fluid. By some
  6163. phenomenon which I am unable to explain, it lighted up all sides of
  6164. every object equally. Such was its diffusiveness, there being no
  6165. central point from which the light emanated, that shadows no longer
  6166. existed. You might have thought yourself under the rays of a vertical
  6167. sun in a tropical region at noonday and the height of summer. No
  6168. vapour was visible. The rocks, the distant mountains, a few isolated
  6169. clumps of forest trees in the distance, presented a weird and
  6170. wonderful aspect under these totally new conditions of a universal
  6171. diffusion of light. We were like Hoffmann's shadowless man.
  6172. After walking a mile we reached the outskirts of a vast forest, but
  6173. not one of those forests of fungi which bordered Port Gr�uben.
  6174. Here was the vegetation of the tertiary period in its fullest blaze
  6175. of magnificence. Tall palms, belonging to species no longer living,
  6176. splendid palmacites, firs, yews, cypress trees, thujas,
  6177. representatives of the conifers, were linked together by a tangled
  6178. network of long climbing plants. A soft carpet of moss and hepaticas
  6179. luxuriously clothed the soil. A few sparkling streams ran almost in
  6180. silence under what would have been the shade of the trees, but that
  6181. there was no shadow. On their banks grew tree-ferns similar to those
  6182. we grow in hothouses. But a remarkable feature was the total absence
  6183. of colour in all those trees, shrubs, and plants, growing without the
  6184. life-giving heat and light of the sun. Everything seemed mixed-up and
  6185. confounded in one uniform silver grey or light brown tint like that
  6186. of fading and faded leaves. Not a green leaf anywhere, and the
  6187. flowers--which were abundant enough in the tertiary period, which
  6188. first gave birth to flowers--looked like brown-paper flowers,
  6189. without colour or scent.
  6190. My uncle Liedenbrock ventured to penetrate under this colossal grove.
  6191. I followed him, not without fear. Since nature had here provided
  6192. vegetable nourishment, why should not the terrible mammals be there
  6193. too? I perceived in the broad clearings left by fallen trees, decayed
  6194. with age, leguminose plants, acerine�, rubice� and many other eatable
  6195. shrubs, dear to ruminant animals at every period. Then I observed,
  6196. mingled together in confusion, trees of countries far apart on the
  6197. surface of the globe. The oak and the palm were growing side by side,
  6198. the Australian eucalyptus leaned against the Norwegian pine, the
  6199. birch-tree of the north mingled its foliage with New Zealand kauris.
  6200. It was enough to distract the most ingenious classifier of
  6201. terrestrial botany.
  6202. Suddenly I halted. I drew back my uncle.
  6203. The diffused light revealed the smallest object in the dense and
  6204. distant thickets. I had thought I saw--no! I did see, with my own
  6205. eyes, vast colossal forms moving amongst the trees. They were
  6206. gigantic animals; it was a herd of mastodons--not fossil remains,
  6207. but living and resembling those the bones of which were found in the
  6208. marshes of Ohio in 1801. I saw those huge elephants whose long,
  6209. flexible trunks were grouting and turning up the soil under the trees
  6210. like a legion of serpents. I could hear the crashing noise of their
  6211. long ivory tusks boring into the old decaying trunks. The boughs
  6212. cracked, and the leaves torn away by cartloads went down the
  6213. cavernous throats of the vast brutes.
  6214. So, then, the dream in which I had had a vision of the prehistoric
  6215. world, of the tertiary and post-tertiary periods, was now realised.
  6216. And there we were alone, in the bowels of the earth, at the mercy of
  6217. its wild inhabitants!
  6218. My uncle was gazing with intense and eager interest.
  6219. "Come on!" said he, seizing my arm. "Forward! forward!"
  6220. "No, I will not!" I cried. "We have no firearms. What could we do in the
  6221. midst of a herd of these four-footed giants? Come away, uncle--come! No
  6222. human being may with safety dare the anger of these monstrous beasts."
  6223. "No human creature?" replied my uncle in a lower voice. "You are
  6224. wrong, Axel. Look, look down there! I fancy I see a living creature
  6225. similar to ourselves: it is a man!"
  6226. I looked, shaking my head incredulously. But though at first I was
  6227. unbelieving I had to yield to the evidence of my senses.
  6228. In fact, at a distance of a quarter of a mile, leaning against the
  6229. trunk of a gigantic kauri, stood a human being, the Proteus of those
  6230. subterranean regions, a new son of Neptune, watching this countless
  6231. herd of mastodons.
  6232. Immanis pecoris custos, immanior ipse. [1]
  6233. [1] "The shepherd of gigantic herds, and huger still himself."
  6234. Yes, truly, huger still himself. It was no longer a fossil being like
  6235. him whose dried remains we had easily lifted up in the field of
  6236. bones; it was a giant, able to control those monsters. In stature he
  6237. was at least twelve feet high. His head, huge and unshapely as a
  6238. buffalo's, was half hidden in the thick and tangled growth of his
  6239. unkempt hair. It most resembled the mane of the primitive elephant.
  6240. In his hand he wielded with ease an enormous bough, a staff worthy of
  6241. this shepherd of the geologic period.
  6242. We stood petrified and speechless with amazement. But he might see
  6243. us! We must fly!
  6244. "Come, do come!" I said to my uncle, who for once allowed himself to
  6245. be persuaded.
  6246. In another quarter of an hour our nimble heels had carried us beyond
  6247. the reach of this horrible monster.
  6248. And yet, now that I can reflect quietly, now that my spirit has grown
  6249. calm again, now that months have slipped by since this strange and
  6250. supernatural meeting, what am I to think? what am I to believe? I
  6251. must conclude that it was impossible that our senses had been
  6252. deceived, that our eyes did not see what we supposed they saw. No
  6253. human being lives in this subterranean world; no generation of men
  6254. dwells in those inferior caverns of the globe, unknown to and
  6255. unconnected with the inhabitants of its surface. It is absurd to
  6256. believe it!
  6257. I had rather admit that it may have been some animal whose structure
  6258. resembled the human, some ape or baboon of the early geological ages,
  6259. some protopitheca, or some mesopitheca, some early or middle ape like
  6260. that discovered by Mr. Lartet in the bone cave of Sansau. But this
  6261. creature surpassed in stature all the measurements known in modern
  6262. pal�ontology. But that a man, a living man, and therefore whole
  6263. generations doubtless besides, should be buried there in the bowels
  6264. of the earth, is impossible.
  6265. However, we had left behind us the luminous forest, dumb with
  6266. astonishment, overwhelmed and struck down with a terror which
  6267. amounted to stupefaction. We kept running on for fear the horrible
  6268. monster might be on our track. It was a flight, a fall, like that
  6269. fearful pulling and dragging which is peculiar to nightmare.
  6270. Instinctively we got back to the Liedenbrock sea, and I cannot say
  6271. into what vagaries my mind would not have carried me but for a
  6272. circumstance which brought me back to practical matters.
  6273. Although I was certain that we were now treading upon a soil not
  6274. hitherto touched by our feet, I often perceived groups of rocks which
  6275. reminded me of those about Port Gr�uben. Besides, this seemed to
  6276. confirm the indications of the needle, and to show that we had
  6277. against our will returned to the north of the Liedenbrock sea.
  6278. Occasionally we felt quite convinced. Brooks and waterfalls were
  6279. tumbling everywhere from the projections in the rocks. I thought I
  6280. recognised the bed of surturbrand, our faithful Hansbach, and the
  6281. grotto in which I had recovered life and consciousness. Then a few
  6282. paces farther on, the arrangement of the cliffs, the appearance of an
  6283. unrecognised stream, or the strange outline of a rock, came to throw
  6284. me again into doubt.
  6285. I communicated my doubts to my uncle. Like myself, he hesitated; he
  6286. could recognise nothing again amidst this monotonous scene.
  6287. "Evidently," said I, "we have not landed again at our original
  6288. starting point, but the storm has carried us a little higher, and if
  6289. we follow the shore we shall find Port Gr�uben."
  6290. "If that is the case it will be useless to continue our exploration,
  6291. and we had better return to our raft. But, Axel, are you not
  6292. mistaken?"
  6293. "It is difficult to speak decidedly, uncle, for all these rocks are
  6294. so very much alike. Yet I think I recognise the promontory at the
  6295. foot of which Hans constructed our launch. We must be very near the
  6296. little port, if indeed this is not it," I added, examining a creek
  6297. which I thought I recognised.
  6298. "No, Axel, we should at least find our own traces and I see nothing--"
  6299. "But I do see," I cried, darting upon an object lying on the sand.
  6300. And I showed my uncle a rusty dagger which I had just picked up.
  6301. "Come," said he, "had you this weapon with you?"
  6302. "I! No, certainly! But you, perhaps--"
  6303. "Not that I am aware," said the Professor. "I have never had this
  6304. object in my possession."
  6305. "Well, this is strange!"
  6306. "No, Axel, it is very simple. The Icelanders often wear arms of this
  6307. kind. This must have belonged to Hans, and he has lost it."
  6308. I shook my head. Hans had never had an object like this in his
  6309. possession.
  6310. "Did it not belong to some pre-adamite warrior?" I cried, "to some
  6311. living man, contemporary with the huge cattle-driver? But no. This is
  6312. not a relic of the stone age. It is not even of the iron age. This
  6313. blade is steel--"
  6314. My uncle stopped me abruptly on my way to a dissertation which would
  6315. have taken me a long way, and said coolly:
  6316. "Be calm, Axel, and reasonable. This dagger belongs to the sixteenth
  6317. century; it is a poniard, such as gentlemen carried in their belts to
  6318. give the coup _de grace._ Its origin is Spanish. It was never either
  6319. yours, or mine, or the hunter's, nor did it belong to any of those
  6320. human beings who may or may not inhabit this inner world. See, it was
  6321. never jagged like this by cutting men's throats; its blade is coated
  6322. with a rust neither a day, nor a year, nor a hundred years old."
  6323. The Professor was getting excited according to his wont, and was
  6324. allowing his imagination to run away with him.
  6325. "Axel, we are on the way towards the grand discovery. This blade has
  6326. been left on the strand for from one to three hundred years, and has
  6327. blunted its edge upon the rocks that fringe this subterranean sea!"
  6328. "But it has not come alone. It has not twisted itself out of shape;
  6329. some one has been here before us!
  6330. "Yes--a man has."
  6331. "And who was that man?"
  6332. "A man who has engraved his name somewhere with that dagger. That man
  6333. wanted once more to mark the way to the centre of the earth. Let us
  6334. look about: look about!"
  6335. And, wonderfully interested, we peered all along the high wall,
  6336. peeping into every fissure which might open out into a gallery.
  6337. And so we arrived at a place where the shore was much narrowed. Here
  6338. the sea came to lap the foot of the steep cliff, leaving a passage no
  6339. wider than a couple of yards. Between two boldly projecting rocks
  6340. appeared the mouth of a dark tunnel.
  6341. There, upon a granite slab, appeared two mysterious graven letters,
  6342. half eaten away by time. They were the initials of the bold and
  6343. daring traveller:
  6344. [Runic initials appear here]
  6345. "A. S.," shouted my uncle. "Arne Saknussemm! Arne Saknussemm
  6346. everywhere!"
  6347. CHAPTER XL.
  6348. PREPARATIONS FOR BLASTING A PASSAGE TO THE CENTRE OF THE EARTH
  6349. Since the start upon this marvellous pilgrimage I had been through so
  6350. many astonishments that I might well be excused for thinking myself
  6351. well hardened against any further surprise. Yet at the sight of these
  6352. two letters, engraved on this spot three hundred years ago, I stood
  6353. aghast in dumb amazement. Not only were the initials of the learned
  6354. alchemist visible upon the living rock, but there lay the iron point
  6355. with which the letters had been engraved. I could no longer doubt of
  6356. the existence of that wonderful traveller and of the fact of his
  6357. unparalleled journey, without the most glaring incredulity.
  6358. Whilst these reflections were occupying me, Professor Liedenbrock had
  6359. launched into a somewhat rhapsodical eulogium, of which Arne
  6360. Saknussemm was, of course, the hero.
  6361. "Thou marvellous genius!" he cried, "thou hast not forgotten one
  6362. indication which might serve to lay open to mortals the road through
  6363. the terrestrial crust; and thy fellow-creatures may even now, after
  6364. the lapse of three centuries, again trace thy footsteps through these
  6365. deep and darksome ways. You reserved the contemplation of these
  6366. wonders for other eyes besides your own. Your name, graven from stage
  6367. to stage, leads the bold follower of your footsteps to the very
  6368. centre of our planet's core, and there again we shall find your own
  6369. name written with your own hand. I too will inscribe my name upon
  6370. this dark granite page. But for ever henceforth let this cape that
  6371. advances into the sea discovered by yourself be known by your own
  6372. illustrious name--Cape Saknussemm."
  6373. Such were the glowing words of panegyric which fell upon my attentive
  6374. ear, and I could not resist the sentiment of enthusiasm with which I
  6375. too was infected. The fire of zeal kindled afresh in me. I forgot
  6376. everything. I dismissed from my mind the past perils of the journey,
  6377. the future danger of our return. That which another had done I
  6378. supposed we might also do, and nothing that was not superhuman
  6379. appeared impossible to me.
  6380. "Forward! forward!" I cried.
  6381. I was already darting down the gloomy tunnel when the Professor
  6382. stopped me; he, the man of impulse, counselled patience and coolness.
  6383. "Let us first return to Hans," he said, "and bring the raft to this
  6384. spot."
  6385. I obeyed, not without dissatisfaction, and passed out rapidly among
  6386. the rocks on the shore.
  6387. I said: "Uncle, do you know it seems to me that circumstances have
  6388. wonderfully befriended us hitherto?"
  6389. "You think so, Axel?"
  6390. "No doubt; even the tempest has put us on the right way. Blessings on
  6391. that storm! It has brought us back to this coast from which fine
  6392. weather would have carried us far away. Suppose we had touched with
  6393. our prow (the prow of a rudder!) the southern shore of the
  6394. Liedenbrock sea, what would have become of us? We should never have
  6395. seen the name of Saknussemm, and we should at this moment be
  6396. imprisoned on a rockbound, impassable coast."
  6397. "Yes, Axel, it is providential that whilst supposing we were steering
  6398. south we should have just got back north at Cape Saknussemm. I must
  6399. say that this is astonishing, and that I feel I have no way to
  6400. explain it."
  6401. "What does that signify, uncle? Our business is not to explain facts,
  6402. but to use them!"
  6403. "Certainly; but--"
  6404. "Well, uncle, we are going to resume the northern route, and to pass
  6405. under the north countries of Europe--under Sweden, Russia, Siberia:
  6406. who knows where?--instead of burrowing under the deserts of Africa,
  6407. or perhaps the waves of the Atlantic; and that is all I want to know."
  6408. "Yes, Axel, you are right. It is all for the best, since we have left
  6409. that weary, horizontal sea, which led us nowhere. Now we shall go
  6410. down, down, down! Do you know that it is now only 1,500 leagues to
  6411. the centre of the globe?"
  6412. "Is that all?" I cried. "Why, that's nothing. Let us start: march!"
  6413. All this crazy talk was going on still when we met the hunter.
  6414. Everything was made ready for our instant departure. Every bit of
  6415. cordage was put on board. We took our places, and with our sail set,
  6416. Hans steered us along the coast to Cape Saknussemm.
  6417. The wind was unfavourable to a species of launch not calculated for
  6418. shallow water. In many places we were obliged to push ourselves along
  6419. with iron-pointed sticks. Often the sunken rocks just beneath the
  6420. surface obliged us to deviate from our straight course. At last,
  6421. after three hours' sailing, about six in the evening we reached a
  6422. place suitable for our landing. I jumped ashore, followed by my uncle
  6423. and the Icelander. This short passage had not served to cool my
  6424. ardour. On the contrary, I even proposed to burn 'our ship,' to
  6425. prevent the possibility of return; but my uncle would not consent to
  6426. that. I thought him singularly lukewarm.
  6427. "At least," I said, "don't let us lose a minute."
  6428. "Yes, yes, lad," he replied; "but first let us examine this new
  6429. gallery, to see if we shall require our ladders."
  6430. My uncle put his Ruhmkorff's apparatus in action; the raft moored to
  6431. the shore was left alone; the mouth of the tunnel was not twenty
  6432. yards from us; and our party, with myself at the head, made for it
  6433. without a moment's delay.
  6434. The aperture, which was almost round, was about five feet in
  6435. diameter; the dark passage was cut out in the live rock and lined
  6436. with a coat of the eruptive matter which formerly issued from it; the
  6437. interior was level with the ground outside, so that we were able to
  6438. enter without difficulty. We were following a horizontal plane, when,
  6439. only six paces in, our progress was interrupted by an enormous block
  6440. just across our way.
  6441. "Accursed rock!" I cried in a passion, finding myself suddenly
  6442. confronted by an impassable obstacle.
  6443. Right and left we searched in vain for a way, up and down, side to
  6444. side; there was no getting any farther. I felt fearfully
  6445. disappointed, and I would not admit that the obstacle was final. I
  6446. stopped, I looked underneath the block: no opening. Above: granite
  6447. still. Hans passed his lamp over every portion of the barrier in
  6448. vain. We must give up all hope of passing it.
  6449. I sat down in despair. My uncle strode from side to side in the
  6450. narrow passage.
  6451. "But how was it with Saknussemm?" I cried.
  6452. "Yes," said my uncle, "was he stopped by this stone barrier?"
  6453. "No, no," I replied with animation. "This fragment of rock has been
  6454. shaken down by some shock or convulsion, or by one of those magnetic
  6455. storms which agitate these regions, and has blocked up the passage
  6456. which lay open to him. Many years have elapsed since the return of
  6457. Saknussemm to the surface and the fall of this huge fragment. Is it
  6458. not evident that this gallery was once the way open to the course of
  6459. the lava, and that at that time there must have been a free passage?
  6460. See here are recent fissures grooving and channelling the granite
  6461. roof. This roof itself is formed of fragments of rock carried down,
  6462. of enormous stones, as if by some giant's hand; but at one time the
  6463. expulsive force was greater than usual, and this block, like the
  6464. falling keystone of a ruined arch, has slipped down to the ground and
  6465. blocked up the way. It is only an accidental obstruction, not met by
  6466. Saknussemm, and if we don't destroy it we shall be unworthy to reach
  6467. the centre of the earth."
  6468. Such was my sentence! The soul of the Professor had passed into me.
  6469. The genius of discovery possessed me wholly. I forgot the past, I
  6470. scorned the future. I gave not a thought to the things of the surface
  6471. of this globe into which I had dived; its cities and its sunny
  6472. plains, Hamburg and the K�nigstrasse, even poor Gr�uben, who must
  6473. have given us up for lost, all were for the time dismissed from the
  6474. pages of my memory.
  6475. "Well," cried my uncle, "let us make a way with our pickaxes."
  6476. "Too hard for the pickaxe."
  6477. "Well, then, the spade."
  6478. "That would take us too long."
  6479. "What, then?"
  6480. "Why gunpowder, to be sure! Let us mine the obstacle and blow it up."
  6481. "Oh, yes, it is only a bit of rock to blast!"
  6482. "Hans, to work!" cried my uncle.
  6483. The Icelander returned to the raft and soon came back with an iron
  6484. bar which he made use of to bore a hole for the charge. This was no
  6485. easy work. A hole was to be made large enough to hold fifty pounds of
  6486. guncotton, whose expansive force is four times that of gunpowder.
  6487. I was terribly excited. Whilst Hans was at work I was actively
  6488. helping my uncle to prepare a slow match of wetted powder encased in
  6489. linen.
  6490. "This will do it," I said.
  6491. "It will," replied my uncle.
  6492. By midnight our mining preparations were over; the charge was rammed
  6493. into the hole, and the slow match uncoiled along the gallery showed
  6494. its end outside the opening.
  6495. A spark would now develop the whole of our preparations into activity.
  6496. "To-morrow," said the Professor.
  6497. I had to be resigned and to wait six long hours.
  6498. CHAPTER XLI.
  6499. THE GREAT EXPLOSION AND THE RUSH DOWN BELOW
  6500. The next day, Thursday, August 27, is a well-remembered date in our
  6501. subterranean journey. It never returns to my memory without sending
  6502. through me a shudder of horror and a palpitation of the heart. From
  6503. that hour we had no further occasion for the exercise of reason, or
  6504. judgment, or skill, or contrivance. We were henceforth to be hurled
  6505. along, the playthings of the fierce elements of the deep.
  6506. At six we were afoot. The moment drew near to clear a way by blasting
  6507. through the opposing mass of granite.
  6508. I begged for the honour of lighting the fuse. This duty done, I was
  6509. to join my companions on the raft, which had not yet been unloaded;
  6510. we should then push off as far as we could and avoid the dangers
  6511. arising from the explosion, the effects of which were not likely to
  6512. be confined to the rock itself.
  6513. The fuse was calculated to burn ten minutes before setting fire to
  6514. the mine. I therefore had sufficient time to get away to the raft.
  6515. I prepared to fulfil my task with some anxiety.
  6516. After a hasty meal, my uncle and the hunter embarked whilst I
  6517. remained on shore. I was supplied with a lighted lantern to set fire
  6518. to the fuse. "Now go," said my uncle, "and return immediately to us."
  6519. "Don't be uneasy," I replied. "I will not play by the way." I
  6520. immediately proceeded to the mouth of the tunnel. I opened my
  6521. lantern. I laid hold of the end of the match. The Professor stood,
  6522. chronometer in hand. "Ready?" he cried.
  6523. "Ay."
  6524. "Fire!"
  6525. I instantly plunged the end of the fuse into the lantern. It
  6526. spluttered and flamed, and I ran at the top of my speed to the raft.
  6527. "Come on board quickly, and let us push off."
  6528. Hans, with a vigorous thrust, sent us from the shore. The raft shot
  6529. twenty fathoms out to sea.
  6530. It was a moment of intense excitement. The Professor was watching the
  6531. hand of the chronometer.
  6532. "Five minutes more!" he said. "Four! Three!"
  6533. My pulse beat half-seconds.
  6534. "Two! One! Down, granite rocks; down with you."
  6535. What took place at that moment? I believe I did not hear the dull
  6536. roar of the explosion. But the rocks suddenly assumed a new
  6537. arrangement: they rent asunder like a curtain. I saw a bottomless pit
  6538. open on the shore. The sea, lashed into sudden fury, rose up in an
  6539. enormous billow, on the ridge of which the unhappy raft was uplifted
  6540. bodily in the air with all its crew and cargo.
  6541. We all three fell down flat. In less than a second we were in deep,
  6542. unfathomable darkness. Then I felt as if not only myself but the raft
  6543. also had no support beneath. I thought it was sinking; but it was not
  6544. so. I wanted to speak to my uncle, but the roaring of the waves
  6545. prevented him from hearing even the sound of my voice.
  6546. In spite of darkness, noise, astonishment, and terror, I then
  6547. understood what had taken place.
  6548. On the other side of the blown-up rock was an abyss. The explosion
  6549. had caused a kind of earthquake in this fissured and abysmal region;
  6550. a great gulf had opened; and the sea, now changed into a torrent, was
  6551. hurrying us along into it.
  6552. I gave myself up for lost.
  6553. An hour passed away--two hours, perhaps--I cannot tell. We clutched
  6554. each other fast, to save ourselves from being thrown off the raft. We
  6555. felt violent shocks whenever we were borne heavily against the craggy
  6556. projections. Yet these shocks were not very frequent, from which I
  6557. concluded that the gully was widening. It was no doubt the same road
  6558. that Saknussemm had taken; but instead of walking peaceably down it,
  6559. as he had done, we were carrying a whole sea along with us.
  6560. These ideas, it will be understood, presented themselves to my mind
  6561. in a vague and undetermined form. I had difficulty in associating any
  6562. ideas together during this headlong race, which seemed like a
  6563. vertical descent. To judge by the air which was whistling past me and
  6564. made a whizzing in my ears, we were moving faster than the fastest
  6565. express trains. To light a torch under these' conditions would have
  6566. been impossible; and our last electric apparatus had been shattered
  6567. by the force of the explosion.
  6568. I was therefore much surprised to see a clear light shining near me.
  6569. It lighted up the calm and unmoved countenance of Hans. The skilful
  6570. huntsman had succeeded in lighting the lantern; and although it
  6571. flickered so much as to threaten to go out, it threw a fitful light
  6572. across the awful darkness.
  6573. I was right in my supposition. It was a wide gallery. The dim light
  6574. could not show us both its walls at once. The fall of the waters
  6575. which were carrying us away exceeded that of the swiftest rapids in
  6576. American rivers. Its surface seemed composed of a sheaf of arrows
  6577. hurled with inconceivable force; I cannot convey my impressions by a
  6578. better comparison. The raft, occasionally seized by an eddy, spun
  6579. round as it still flew along. When it approached the walls of the
  6580. gallery I threw on them the light of the lantern, and I could judge
  6581. somewhat of the velocity of our speed by noticing how the jagged
  6582. projections of the rocks spun into endless ribbons and bands, so that
  6583. we seemed confined within a network of shifting lines. I supposed we
  6584. were running at the rate of thirty leagues an hour.
  6585. My uncle and I gazed on each other with haggard eyes, clinging to the
  6586. stump of the mast, which had snapped asunder at the first shock of
  6587. our great catastrophe. We kept our backs to the wind, not to be
  6588. stifled by the rapidity of a movement which no human power could
  6589. check.
  6590. Hours passed away. No change in our situation; but a discovery came
  6591. to complicate matters and make them worse.
  6592. In seeking to put our cargo into somewhat better order, I found that
  6593. the greater part of the articles embarked had disappeared at the
  6594. moment of the explosion, when the sea broke in upon us with such
  6595. violence. I wanted to know exactly what we had saved, and with the
  6596. lantern in my hand I began my examination. Of our instruments none
  6597. were saved but the compass and the chronometer; our stock of ropes
  6598. and ladders was reduced to the bit of cord rolled round the stump of
  6599. the mast! Not a spade, not a pickaxe, not a hammer was left us; and,
  6600. irreparable disaster! we had only one day's provisions left.
  6601. I searched every nook and corner, every crack and cranny in the raft.
  6602. There was nothing. Our provisions were reduced to one bit of salt
  6603. meat and a few biscuits.
  6604. I stared at our failing supplies stupidly. I refused to take in the
  6605. gravity of our loss. And yet what was the use of troubling myself. If
  6606. we had had provisions enough for months, how could we get out of the
  6607. abyss into which we were being hurled by an irresistible torrent? Why
  6608. should we fear the horrors of famine, when death was swooping down
  6609. upon us in a multitude of other forms? Would there be time left to
  6610. die of starvation?
  6611. Yet by an inexplicable play of the imagination I forgot my present
  6612. dangers, to contemplate the threatening future. Was there any chance
  6613. of escaping from the fury of this impetuous torrent, and of returning
  6614. to the surface of the globe? I could not form the slightest
  6615. conjecture how or when. But one chance in a thousand, or ten
  6616. thousand, is still a chance; whilst death from starvation would leave
  6617. us not the smallest hope in the world.
  6618. The thought came into my mind to declare the whole truth to my uncle,
  6619. to show him the dreadful straits to which we were reduced, and to
  6620. calculate how long we might yet expect to live. But I had the courage
  6621. to preserve silence. I wished to leave him cool and self-possessed.
  6622. At that moment the light from our lantern began to sink by little and
  6623. little, and then went out entirely. The wick had burnt itself out.
  6624. Black night reigned again; and there was no hope left of being able
  6625. to dissipate the palpable darkness. We had yet a torch left, but we
  6626. could not have kept it alight. Then, like a child, I closed my eyes
  6627. firmly, not to see the darkness.
  6628. After a considerable lapse of time our speed redoubled. I could
  6629. perceive it by the sharpness of the currents that blew past my face.
  6630. The descent became steeper. I believe we were no longer sliding, but
  6631. falling down. I had an impression that we were dropping vertically.
  6632. My uncle's hand, and the vigorous arm of Hans, held me fast.
  6633. Suddenly, after a space of time that I could not measure, I felt a
  6634. shock. The raft had not struck against any hard resistance, but had
  6635. suddenly been checked in its fall. A waterspout, an immense liquid
  6636. column, was beating upon the surface of the waters. I was
  6637. suffocating! I was drowning!
  6638. But this sudden flood was not of long duration. In a few seconds I
  6639. found myself in the air again, which I inhaled with all the force of
  6640. my lungs. My uncle and Hans were still holding me fast by the arms;
  6641. and the raft was still carrying us.
  6642. CHAPTER XLII.
  6643. HEADLONG SPEED UPWARD THROUGH THE HORRORS OF DARKNESS
  6644. It might have been, as I guessed, about ten at night. The first of my
  6645. senses which came into play after this last bout was that of hearing.
  6646. All at once I could hear; and it was a real exercise of the sense of
  6647. hearing. I could hear the silence in the gallery after the din which
  6648. for hours had stunned me. At last these words of my uncle's came to
  6649. me like a vague murmuring:
  6650. "We are going up."
  6651. "What do you mean?" I cried.
  6652. "Yes, we are going up--up!"
  6653. I stretched out my arm. I touched the wall, and drew back my hand
  6654. bleeding. We were ascending with extreme rapidity.
  6655. "The torch! The torch!" cried the Professor.
  6656. Not without difficulty Hans succeeded in lighting the torch; and the
  6657. flame, preserving its upward tendency, threw enough light to show us
  6658. what kind of a place we were in.
  6659. "Just as I thought," said the Professor "We are in a tunnel not
  6660. four-and-twenty feet in diameter. The water had reached the bottom of
  6661. the gulf. It is now rising to its level, and carrying us with it."
  6662. "Where to?"
  6663. "I cannot tell; but we must be ready for anything. We are mounting at
  6664. a speed which seems to me of fourteen feet in a second, or ten miles
  6665. an hour. At this rate we shall get on."
  6666. "Yes, if nothing stops us; if this well has an aperture. But suppose
  6667. it to be stopped. If the air is condensed by the pressure of this
  6668. column of water we shall be crushed."
  6669. "Axel," replied the Professor with perfect coolness, "our situation
  6670. is almost desperate; but there are some chances of deliverance, and
  6671. it is these that I am considering. If at every instant we may perish,
  6672. so at every instant we may be saved. Let us then be prepared to seize
  6673. upon the smallest advantage."
  6674. "But what shall we do now?"
  6675. "Recruit our strength by eating."
  6676. At these words I fixed a haggard eye upon my uncle. That which I had
  6677. been so unwilling to confess at last had to be told.
  6678. "Eat, did you say?"
  6679. "Yes, at once."
  6680. The Professor added a few words in Danish, but Hans shook his head
  6681. mournfully.
  6682. "What!" cried my uncle. "Have we lost our provisions?"
  6683. "Yes; here is all we have left; one bit of salt meat for the three."
  6684. My uncle stared at me as if he could not understand.
  6685. "Well," said I, "do you think we have any chance of being saved?"
  6686. My question was unanswered.
  6687. An hour passed away. I began to feel the pangs of a violent hunger.
  6688. My companions were suffering too, and not one of us dared touch this
  6689. wretched remnant of our goodly store.
  6690. But now we were mounting up with excessive speed. Sometimes the air
  6691. would cut our breath short, as is experienced by aeronauts ascending
  6692. too rapidly. But whilst they suffer from cold in proportion to their
  6693. rise, we were beginning to feel a contrary effect. The heat was
  6694. increasing in a manner to cause us the most fearful anxiety, and
  6695. certainly the temperature was at this moment at the height of 100�
  6696. Fahr.
  6697. What could be the meaning of such a change? Up to this time facts had
  6698. supported the theories of Davy and of Liedenbrock; until now
  6699. particular conditions of non-conducting rocks, electricity and
  6700. magnetism, had tempered the laws of nature, giving us only a
  6701. moderately warm climate, for the theory of a central fire remained in
  6702. my estimation the only one that was true and explicable. Were we then
  6703. turning back to where the phenomena of central heat ruled in all
  6704. their rigour and would reduce the most refractory rocks to the state
  6705. of a molten liquid? I feared this, and said to the Professor:
  6706. "If we are neither drowned, nor shattered to pieces, nor starved to
  6707. death, there is still the chance that we may be burned alive and
  6708. reduced to ashes."
  6709. At this he shrugged his shoulders and returned to his thoughts.
  6710. Another hour passed, and, except some slight increase in the
  6711. temperature, nothing new had happened.
  6712. "Come," said he, "we must determine upon something."
  6713. "Determine on what?" said I.
  6714. "Yes, we must recruit our strength by carefully rationing ourselves,
  6715. and so prolong our existence by a few hours. But we shall be reduced
  6716. to very great weakness at last."
  6717. "And our last hour is not far off."
  6718. "Well, if there is a chance of safety, if a moment for active
  6719. exertion presents itself, where should we find the required strength
  6720. if we allowed ourselves to be enfeebled by hunger?"
  6721. "Well, uncle, when this bit of meat has been devoured what shall we
  6722. have left?"
  6723. "Nothing, Axel, nothing at all. But will it do you any more good to
  6724. devour it with your eyes than with your teeth? Your reasoning has in
  6725. it neither sense nor energy."
  6726. "Then don't you despair?" I cried irritably.
  6727. "No, certainly not," was the Professor's firm reply.
  6728. "What! do you think there is any chance of safety left?"
  6729. "Yes, I do; as long as the heart beats, as long as body and soul keep
  6730. together, I cannot admit that any creature endowed with a will has
  6731. need to despair of life."
  6732. Resolute words these! The man who could speak so, under such
  6733. circumstances, was of no ordinary type.
  6734. "Finally, what do you mean to do?" I asked.
  6735. "Eat what is left to the last crumb, and recruit our fading strength.
  6736. This meal will be our last, perhaps: so let it be! But at any rate we
  6737. shall once more be men, and not exhausted, empty bags."
  6738. "Well, let us consume it then," I cried.
  6739. My uncle took the piece of meat and the few biscuits which had
  6740. escaped from the general destruction. He divided them into three
  6741. equal portions and gave one to each. This made about a pound of
  6742. nourishment for each. The Professor ate his greedily, with a kind of
  6743. feverish rage. I ate without pleasure, almost with disgust; Hans
  6744. quietly, moderately, masticating his small mouthfuls without any
  6745. noise, and relishing them with the calmness of a man above all
  6746. anxiety about the future. By diligent search he had found a flask of
  6747. Hollands; he offered it to us each in turn, and this generous
  6748. beverage cheered us up slightly.
  6749. "_Fortr�fflig,_" said Hans, drinking in his turn.
  6750. "Excellent," replied my uncle.
  6751. A glimpse of hope had returned, although without cause. But our last
  6752. meal was over, and it was now five in the morning.
  6753. Man is so constituted that health is a purely negative state. Hunger
  6754. once satisfied, it is difficult for a man to imagine the horrors of
  6755. starvation; they cannot be understood without being felt.
  6756. Therefore it was that after our long fast these few mouthfuls of meat
  6757. and biscuit made us triumph over our past agonies.
  6758. But as soon as the meal was done, we each of us fell deep into
  6759. thought. What was Hans thinking of--that man of the far West, but
  6760. who seemed ruled by the fatalist doctrines of the East?
  6761. As for me, my thoughts were made up of remembrances, and they carried
  6762. me up to the surface of the globe of which I ought never to have
  6763. taken leave. The house in the K�nigstrasse, my poor dear Gr�uben,
  6764. that kind soul Martha, flitted like visions before my eyes, and in
  6765. the dismal moanings which from time to time reached my ears I thought
  6766. I could distinguish the roar of the traffic of the great cities upon
  6767. earth.
  6768. My uncle still had his eye upon his work. Torch in hand, he tried to
  6769. gather some idea of our situation from the observation of the strata.
  6770. This calculation could, at best, be but a vague approximation; but a
  6771. learned man is always a philosopher when he succeeds in remaining
  6772. cool, and assuredly Professor Liedenbrock possessed this quality to a
  6773. surprising degree.
  6774. I could hear him murmuring geological terms. I could understand them,
  6775. and in spite of myself I felt interested in this last geological
  6776. study.
  6777. "Eruptive granite," he was saying. "We are still in the primitive
  6778. period. But we are going up, up, higher still. Who can tell?"
  6779. Ah! who can tell? With his hand he was examining the perpendicular
  6780. wall, and in a few more minutes he continued:
  6781. "This is gneiss! here is mica schist! Ah! presently we shall come to
  6782. the transition period, and then--"
  6783. What did the Professor mean? Could he be trying to measure the
  6784. thickness of the crust of the earth that lay between us and the world
  6785. above? Had he any means of making this calculation? No, he had not
  6786. the aneroid, and no guessing could supply its place.
  6787. Still the temperature kept rising, and I felt myself steeped in a
  6788. broiling atmosphere. I could only compare it to the heat of a furnace
  6789. at the moment when the molten metal is running into the mould.
  6790. Gradually we had been obliged to throw aside our coats and
  6791. waistcoats, the lightest covering became uncomfortable and even
  6792. painful.
  6793. "Are we rising into a fiery furnace?" I cried at one moment when the
  6794. heat was redoubling.
  6795. "No," replied my uncle, "that is impossible--quite impossible!"
  6796. "Yet," I answered, feeling the wall, "this well is burning hot."
  6797. At the same moment, touching the water, I had to withdraw my hand in
  6798. haste.
  6799. "The water is scalding," I cried.
  6800. This time the Professor's only answer was an angry gesture.
  6801. Then an unconquerable terror seized upon me, from which I could no
  6802. longer get free. I felt that a catastrophe was approaching before
  6803. which the boldest spirit must quail. A dim, vague notion laid hold of
  6804. my mind, but which was fast hardening into certainty. I tried to
  6805. repel it, but it would return. I dared not express it in plain terms.
  6806. Yet a few involuntary observations confirmed me in my view. By the
  6807. flickering light of the torch I could distinguish contortions in the
  6808. granite beds; a phenomenon was unfolding in which electricity would
  6809. play the principal part; then this unbearable heat, this boiling
  6810. water! I consulted the compass.
  6811. The compass had lost its properties! it had ceased to act properly!
  6812. CHAPTER XLIII.
  6813. SHOT OUT OF A VOLCANO AT LAST!
  6814. Yes: our compass was no longer a guide; the needle flew from pole to
  6815. pole with a kind of frenzied impulse; it ran round the dial, and spun
  6816. hither and thither as if it were giddy or intoxicated.
  6817. I knew quite well that according to the best received theories the
  6818. mineral covering of the globe is never at absolute rest; the changes
  6819. brought about by the chemical decomposition of its component parts,
  6820. the agitation caused by great liquid torrents, and the magnetic
  6821. currents, are continually tending to disturb it--even when living
  6822. beings upon its surface may fancy that all is quiet below. A
  6823. phenomenon of this kind would not have greatly alarmed me, or at any
  6824. rate it would not have given rise to dreadful apprehensions.
  6825. But other facts, other circumstances, of a peculiar nature, came to
  6826. reveal to me by degrees the true state of the case. There came
  6827. incessant and continuous explosions. I could only compare them to the
  6828. loud rattle of a long train of chariots driven at full speed over the
  6829. stones, or a roar of unintermitting thunder.
  6830. Then the disordered compass, thrown out of gear by the electric
  6831. currents, confirmed me in a growing conviction. The mineral crust of
  6832. the globe threatened to burst up, the granite foundations to come
  6833. together with a crash, the fissure through which we were helplessly
  6834. driven would be filled up, the void would be full of crushed
  6835. fragments of rock, and we poor wretched mortals were to be buried and
  6836. annihilated in this dreadful consummation.
  6837. "My uncle," I cried, "we are lost now, utterly lost!"
  6838. "What are you in a fright about now?" was the calm rejoinder. "What
  6839. is the matter with you?"
  6840. "The matter? Look at those quaking walls! look at those shivering
  6841. rocks. Don't you feel the burning heat? Don't you see how the water
  6842. boils and bubbles? Are you blind to the dense vapours and steam
  6843. growing thicker and denser every minute? See this agitated compass
  6844. needle. It is an earthquake that is threatening us."
  6845. My undaunted uncle calmly shook his head.
  6846. "Do you think," said he, "an earthquake is coming?"
  6847. "I do."
  6848. "Well, I think you are mistaken."
  6849. "What! don't you recognise the symptoms?"
  6850. "Of an earthquake? no! I am looking out for something better."
  6851. "What can you mean? Explain?"
  6852. "It is an eruption, Axel."
  6853. "An eruption! Do you mean to affirm that we are running up the shaft
  6854. of a volcano?"
  6855. "I believe we are," said the indomitable Professor with an air of
  6856. perfect self-possession; "and it is the best thing that could
  6857. possibly happen to us under our circumstances."
  6858. The best thing! Was my uncle stark mad? What did the man mean? and
  6859. what was the use of saying facetious things at a time like this?
  6860. "What!" I shouted. "Are we being taken up in an eruption? Our fate
  6861. has flung us here among burning lavas, molten rocks, boiling waters,
  6862. and all kinds of volcanic matter; we are going to be pitched out,
  6863. expelled, tossed up, vomited, spit out high into the air, along with
  6864. fragments of rock, showers of ashes and scoria, in the midst of a
  6865. towering rush of smoke and flames; and it is the best thing that
  6866. could happen to us!"
  6867. "Yes," replied the Professor, eyeing me over his spectacles, "I don't
  6868. see any other way of reaching the surface of the earth."
  6869. I pass rapidly over the thousand ideas which passed through my mind.
  6870. My uncle was right, undoubtedly right; and never had he seemed to me
  6871. more daring and more confirmed in his notions than at this moment
  6872. when he was calmly contemplating the chances of being shot out of a
  6873. volcano!
  6874. In the meantime up we went; the night passed away in continual
  6875. ascent; the din and uproar around us became more and more
  6876. intensified; I was stifled and stunned; I thought my last hour was
  6877. approaching; and yet imagination is such a strong thing that even in
  6878. this supreme hour I was occupied with strange and almost childish
  6879. speculations. But I was the victim, not the master, of my own
  6880. thoughts.
  6881. It was very evident that we were being hurried upward upon the crest
  6882. of a wave of eruption; beneath our raft were boiling waters, and
  6883. under these the more sluggish lava was working its way up in a heated
  6884. mass, together with shoals of fragments of rock which, when they
  6885. arrived at the crater, would be dispersed in all directions high and
  6886. low. We were imprisoned in the shaft or chimney of some volcano.
  6887. There was no room to doubt of that.
  6888. But this time, instead of Sn�fell, an extinct volcano, we were inside
  6889. one in full activity. I wondered, therefore, where could this
  6890. mountain be, and in what part of the world we were to be shot out.
  6891. I made no doubt but that it would be in some northern region. Before
  6892. its disorders set in, the needle had never deviated from that
  6893. direction. From Cape Saknussemm we had been carried due north for
  6894. hundreds of leagues. Were we under Iceland again? Were we destined to
  6895. be thrown up out of Hecla, or by which of the seven other fiery
  6896. craters in that island? Within a radius of five hundred leagues to
  6897. the west I remembered under this parallel of latitude only the
  6898. imperfectly known volcanoes of the north-east coast of America. To
  6899. the east there was only one in the 80th degree of north latitude, the
  6900. Esk in Jan Mayen Island, not far from Spitzbergen! Certainly there
  6901. was no lack of craters, and there were some capacious enough to throw
  6902. out a whole army! But I wanted to know which of them was to serve us
  6903. for an exit from the inner world.
  6904. Towards morning the ascending movement became accelerated. If the
  6905. heat increased, instead of diminishing, as we approached nearer to
  6906. the surface of the globe, this effect was due to local causes alone,
  6907. and those volcanic. The manner of our locomotion left no doubt in my
  6908. mind. An enormous force, a force of hundreds of atmospheres,
  6909. generated by the extreme pressure of confined vapours, was driving us
  6910. irresistibly forward. But to what numberless dangers it exposed us!
  6911. Soon lurid lights began to penetrate the vertical gallery which
  6912. widened as we went up. Right and left I could see deep channels, like
  6913. huge tunnels, out of which escaped dense volumes of smoke; tongues of
  6914. fire lapped the walls, which crackled and sputtered under the intense
  6915. heat.
  6916. "See, see, my uncle!" I cried.
  6917. "Well, those are only sulphureous flames and vapours, which one must
  6918. expect to see in an eruption. They are quite natural."
  6919. "But suppose they should wrap us round."
  6920. "But they won't wrap us round."
  6921. "But we shall be stifled."
  6922. "We shall not be stifled at all. The gallery is widening, and if it
  6923. becomes necessary, we shall abandon the raft, and creep into a
  6924. crevice."
  6925. "But the water--the rising water?"
  6926. "There is no more water, Axel; only a lava paste, which is bearing us
  6927. up on its surface to the top of the crater."
  6928. The liquid column had indeed disappeared, to give place to dense and
  6929. still boiling eruptive matter of all kinds. The temperature was
  6930. becoming unbearable. A thermometer exposed to this atmosphere would
  6931. have marked 150�. The perspiration streamed from my body. But for the
  6932. rapidity of our ascent we should have been suffocated.
  6933. But the Professor gave up his idea of abandoning the raft, and it was
  6934. well he did. However roughly joined together, those planks afforded
  6935. us a firmer support than we could have found anywhere else.
  6936. About eight in the morning a new incident occurred. The upward
  6937. movement ceased. The raft lay motionless.
  6938. "What is this?" I asked, shaken by this sudden stoppage as if by a
  6939. shock.
  6940. "It is a halt," replied my uncle.
  6941. "Is the eruption checked?" I asked.
  6942. "I hope not."
  6943. I rose, and tried to look around me. Perhaps the raft itself, stopped
  6944. in its course by a projection, was staying the volcanic torrent. If
  6945. this were the case we should have to release it as soon as possible.
  6946. But it was not so. The blast of ashes, scorix, and rubbish had ceased
  6947. to rise.
  6948. "Has the eruption stopped?" I cried.
  6949. "Ah!" said my uncle between his clenched teeth, "you are afraid. But
  6950. don't alarm yourself--this lull cannot last long. It has lasted now
  6951. five minutes, and in a short time we shall resume our journey to the
  6952. mouth of the crater."
  6953. As he spoke, the Professor continued to consult his chronometer, and
  6954. he was again right in his prognostications. The raft was soon hurried
  6955. and driven forward with a rapid but irregular movement, which lasted
  6956. about ten minutes, and then stopped again.
  6957. "Very good," said my uncle; "in ten minutes more we shall be off
  6958. again, for our present business lies with an intermittent volcano. It
  6959. gives us time now and then to take breath."
  6960. This was perfectly true. When the ten minutes were over we started
  6961. off again with renewed and increased speed. We were obliged to lay
  6962. fast hold of the planks of the raft, not to be thrown off. Then again
  6963. the paroxysm was over.
  6964. I have since reflected upon this singular phenomenon without being
  6965. able to explain it. At any rate it was clear that we were not in the
  6966. main shaft of the volcano, but in a lateral gallery where there were
  6967. felt recurrent tunes of reaction.
  6968. How often this operation was repeated I cannot say. All I know is,
  6969. that at each fresh impulse we were hurled forward with a greatly
  6970. increased force, and we seemed as if we were mere projectiles. During
  6971. the short halts we were stifled with the heat; whilst we were being
  6972. projected forward the hot air almost stopped my breath. I thought for
  6973. a moment how delightful it would be to find myself carried suddenly
  6974. into the arctic regions, with a cold 30� below the freezing point. My
  6975. overheated brain conjured up visions of white plains of cool snow,
  6976. where I might roll and allay my feverish heat. Little by little my
  6977. brain, weakened by so many constantly repeated shocks, seemed to be
  6978. giving way altogether. But for the strong arm of Hans I should more
  6979. than once have had my head broken against the granite roof of our
  6980. burning dungeon.
  6981. I have therefore no exact recollection of what took place during the
  6982. following hours. I have a confused impression left of continuous
  6983. explosions, loud detonations, a general shaking of the rocks all
  6984. around us, and of a spinning movement with which our raft was once
  6985. whirled helplessly round. It rocked upon the lava torrent, amidst a
  6986. dense fall of ashes. Snorting flames darted their fiery tongues at
  6987. us. There were wild, fierce puffs of stormy wind from below,
  6988. resembling the blasts of vast iron furnaces blowing all at one time;
  6989. and I caught a glimpse of the figure of Hans lighted up by the fire;
  6990. and all the feeling I had left was just what I imagine must be the
  6991. feeling of an unhappy criminal doomed to be blown away alive from the
  6992. mouth of a cannon, just before the trigger is pulled, and the flying
  6993. limbs and rags of flesh and skin fill the quivering air and spatter
  6994. the blood-stained ground.
  6995. CHAPTER XLIV.
  6996. SUNNY LANDS IN THE BLUE MEDITERRANEAN
  6997. When I opened my eyes again I felt myself grasped by the belt with
  6998. the strong hand of our guide. With the other arm he supported my
  6999. uncle. I was not seriously hurt, but I was shaken and bruised and
  7000. battered all over. I found myself lying on the sloping side of a
  7001. mountain only two yards from a gaping gulf, which would have
  7002. swallowed me up had I leaned at all that way. Hans had saved me from
  7003. death whilst I lay rolling on the edge of the crater.
  7004. "Where are we?" asked my uncle irascibly, as if he felt much injured
  7005. by being landed upon the earth again.
  7006. The hunter shook his head in token of complete ignorance.
  7007. "Is it Iceland?" I asked.
  7008. "_Nej,_" replied Hans.
  7009. "What! Not Iceland?" cried the Professor.
  7010. "Hans must be mistaken," I said, raising myself up.
  7011. This was our final surprise after all the astonishing events of our
  7012. wonderful journey. I expected to see a white cone covered with the
  7013. eternal snow of ages rising from the midst of the barren deserts of
  7014. the icy north, faintly lighted with the pale rays of the arctic sun,
  7015. far away in the highest latitudes known; but contrary to all our
  7016. expectations, my uncle, the Icelander, and myself were sitting
  7017. half-way down a mountain baked under the burning rays of a southern
  7018. sun, which was blistering us with the heat, and blinding us with the
  7019. fierce light of his nearly vertical rays.
  7020. I could not believe my own eyes; but the heated air and the sensation
  7021. of burning left me no room for doubt. We had come out of the crater
  7022. half naked, and the radiant orb to which we had been strangers for
  7023. two months was lavishing upon us out of his blazing splendours more
  7024. of his light and heat than we were able to receive with comfort.
  7025. When my eyes had become accustomed to the bright light to which they
  7026. had been so long strangers, I began to use them to set my imagination
  7027. right. At least I would have it to be Spitzbergen, and I was in no
  7028. humour to give up this notion.
  7029. The Professor was the first to speak, and said:
  7030. "Well, this is not much like Iceland."
  7031. "But is it Jan Mayen?" I asked.
  7032. "Nor that either," he answered. "This is no northern mountain; here
  7033. are no granite peaks capped with snow. Look, Axel, look!"
  7034. Above our heads, at a height of five hundred feet or more, we saw the
  7035. crater of a volcano, through which, at intervals of fifteen minutes
  7036. or so, there issued with loud explosions lofty columns of fire,
  7037. mingled with pumice stones, ashes, and flowing lava. I could feel the
  7038. heaving of the mountain, which seemed to breathe like a huge whale,
  7039. and puff out fire and wind from its vast blowholes. Beneath, down a
  7040. pretty steep declivity, ran streams of lava for eight or nine hundred
  7041. feet, giving the mountain a height of about 1,300 or 1,400 feet. But
  7042. the base of the mountain was hidden in a perfect bower of rich
  7043. verdure, amongst which I was able to distinguish the olive, the fig,
  7044. and vines, covered with their luscious purple bunches.
  7045. I was forced to confess that there was nothing arctic here.
  7046. When the eye passed beyond these green surroundings it rested on a
  7047. wide, blue expanse of sea or lake, which appeared to enclose this
  7048. enchanting island, within a compass of only a few leagues. Eastward
  7049. lay a pretty little white seaport town or village, with a few houses
  7050. scattered around it, and in the harbour of which a few vessels of
  7051. peculiar rig were gently swayed by the softly swelling waves. Beyond
  7052. it, groups of islets rose from the smooth, blue waters, but in such
  7053. numbers that they seemed to dot the sea like a shoal. To the west
  7054. distant coasts lined the dim horizon, on some rose blue mountains of
  7055. smooth, undulating forms; on a more distant coast arose a prodigious
  7056. cone crowned on its summit with a snowy plume of white cloud. To the
  7057. northward lay spread a vast sheet of water, sparkling and dancing
  7058. under the hot, bright rays, the uniformity broken here and there by
  7059. the topmast of a gallant ship appearing above the horizon, or a
  7060. swelling sail moving slowly before the wind.
  7061. This unforeseen spectacle was most charming to eyes long used to
  7062. underground darkness.
  7063. "Where are we? Where are we?" I asked faintly.
  7064. Hans closed his eyes with lazy indifference. What did it matter to
  7065. him? My uncle looked round with dumb surprise.
  7066. "Well, whatever mountain this may be," he said at last, "it is very
  7067. hot here. The explosions are going on still, and I don't think it
  7068. would look well to have come out by an eruption, and then to get our
  7069. heads broken by bits of falling rock. Let us get down. Then we shall
  7070. know better what we are about. Besides, I am starving, and parching
  7071. with thirst."
  7072. Decidedly the Professor was not given to contemplation. For my part,
  7073. I could for another hour or two have forgotten my hunger and my
  7074. fatigue to enjoy the lovely scene before me; but I had to follow my
  7075. companions.
  7076. The slope of the volcano was in many places of great steepness. We
  7077. slid down screes of ashes, carefully avoiding the lava streams which
  7078. glided sluggishly by us like fiery serpents. As we went I chattered
  7079. and asked all sorts of questions as to our whereabouts, for I was too
  7080. much excited not to talk a great deal.
  7081. "We are in Asia," I cried, "on the coasts of India, in the Malay
  7082. Islands, or in Oceania. We have passed through half the globe, and
  7083. come out nearly at the antipodes."
  7084. "But the compass?" said my uncle.
  7085. "Ay, the compass!" I said, greatly puzzled. "According to the compass
  7086. we have gone northward."
  7087. "Has it lied?"
  7088. "Surely not. Could it lie?"
  7089. "Unless, indeed, this is the North Pole!"
  7090. "Oh, no, it is not the Pole; but--"
  7091. Well, here was something that baffled us completely. I could not tell
  7092. what to say.
  7093. But now we were coming into that delightful greenery, and I was
  7094. suffering greatly from hunger and thirst. Happily, after two hours'
  7095. walking, a charming country lay open before us, covered with olive
  7096. trees, pomegranate trees, and delicious vines, all of which seemed to
  7097. belong to anybody who pleased to claim them. Besides, in our state of
  7098. destitution and famine we were not likely to be particular. Oh, the
  7099. inexpressible pleasure of pressing those cool, sweet fruits to our
  7100. lips, and eating grapes by mouthfuls off the rich, full bunches! Not
  7101. far off, in the grass, under the delicious shade of the trees, I
  7102. discovered a spring of fresh, cool water, in which we luxuriously
  7103. bathed our faces, hands, and feet.
  7104. Whilst we were thus enjoying the sweets of repose a child appeared
  7105. out of a grove of olive trees.
  7106. "Ah!" I cried, "here is an inhabitant of this happy land!"
  7107. It was but a poor boy, miserably ill-clad, a sufferer from poverty,
  7108. and our aspect seemed to alarm him a great deal; in fact, only half
  7109. clothed, with ragged hair and beards, we were a suspicious-looking
  7110. party; and if the people of the country knew anything about thieves,
  7111. we were very likely to frighten them.
  7112. Just as the poor little wretch was going to take to his heels, Hans
  7113. caught hold of him, and brought him to us, kicking and struggling.
  7114. My uncle began to encourage him as well as he could, and said to him
  7115. in good German:
  7116. "_Was heiszt diesen Berg, mein Knablein? Sage mir geschwind!_"
  7117. ("What is this mountain called, my little friend?")
  7118. The child made no answer.
  7119. "Very well," said my uncle. "I infer that we are not in Germany."
  7120. He put the same question in English.
  7121. We got no forwarder. I was a good deal puzzled.
  7122. "Is the child dumb?" cried the Professor, who, proud of his knowledge
  7123. of many languages, now tried French: "_Comment appellet-on cette
  7124. montagne, mon enfant?_"
  7125. Silence still.
  7126. "Now let us try Italian," said my uncle; and he said:
  7127. "_Dove noi siamo?_"
  7128. "Yes, where are we?" I impatiently repeated.
  7129. But there was no answer still.
  7130. "Will you speak when you are told?" exclaimed my uncle, shaking the
  7131. urchin by the ears. "_Come si noma questa isola?_"
  7132. "STROMBOLI," replied the little herdboy, slipping out of Hans' hands,
  7133. and scudding into the plain across the olive trees.
  7134. We were hardly thinking of that. Stromboli! What an effect this
  7135. unexpected name produced upon my mind! We were in the midst of the
  7136. Mediterranean Sea, on an island of the �olian archipelago, in the
  7137. ancient Strongyle, where �olus kept the winds and the storms chained
  7138. up, to be let loose at his will. And those distant blue mountains in
  7139. the east were the mountains of Calabria. And that threatening volcano
  7140. far away in the south was the fierce Etna.
  7141. "Stromboli, Stromboli!" I repeated.
  7142. My uncle kept time to my exclamations with hands and feet, as well as
  7143. with words. We seemed to be chanting in chorus!
  7144. What a journey we had accomplished! How marvellous! Having entered by
  7145. one volcano, we had issued out of another more than two thousand
  7146. miles from Sn�fell and from that barren, far-away Iceland! The
  7147. strange chances of our expedition had carried us into the heart of
  7148. the fairest region in the world. We had exchanged the bleak regions
  7149. of perpetual snow and of impenetrable barriers of ice for those of
  7150. brightness and 'the rich hues of all glorious things.' We had left
  7151. over our heads the murky sky and cold fogs of the frigid zone to
  7152. revel under the azure sky of Italy!
  7153. After our delicious repast of fruits and cold, clear water we set off
  7154. again to reach the port of Stromboli. It would not have been wise to
  7155. tell how we came there. The superstitious Italians would have set us
  7156. down for fire-devils vomited out of hell; so we presented ourselves
  7157. in the humble guise of shipwrecked mariners. It was not so glorious,
  7158. but it was safer.
  7159. On my way I could hear my uncle murmuring: "But the compass! that
  7160. compass! It pointed due north. How are we to explain that fact?"
  7161. "My opinion is," I replied disdainfully, "that it is best not to
  7162. explain it. That is the easiest way to shelve the difficulty."
  7163. "Indeed, sir! The occupant of a professorial chair at the Johann�um
  7164. unable to explain the reason of a cosmical phenomenon! Why, it would
  7165. be simply disgraceful!"
  7166. And as he spoke, my uncle, half undressed, in rags, a perfect
  7167. scarecrow, with his leathern belt around him, settling his spectacles
  7168. upon his nose and looking learned and imposing, was himself again,
  7169. the terrible German professor of mineralogy.
  7170. One hour after we had left the grove of olives, we arrived at the
  7171. little port of San Vicenzo, where Hans claimed his thirteen week's
  7172. wages, which was counted out to him with a hearty shaking of hands
  7173. all round.
  7174. At that moment, if he did not share our natural emotion, at least his
  7175. countenance expanded in a manner very unusual with him, and while
  7176. with the ends of his fingers he lightly pressed our hands, I believe
  7177. he smiled.
  7178. CHAPTER XLV.
  7179. ALL'S WELL THAT ENDS WELL
  7180. Such is the conclusion of a history which I cannot expect everybody
  7181. to believe, for some people will believe nothing against the
  7182. testimony of their own experience. However, I am indifferent to their
  7183. incredulity, and they may believe as much or as little as they please.
  7184. The Stromboliotes received us kindly as shipwrecked mariners. They
  7185. gave us food and clothing. After waiting forty-eight hours, on the 31
  7186. st of August, a small craft took us to Messina, where a few days'
  7187. rest completely removed the effect of our fatigues.
  7188. On Friday, September the 4th, we embarked on the steamer Volturno,
  7189. employed by the French Messageries Imperiales, and in three days more
  7190. we were at Marseilles, having no care on our minds except that
  7191. abominable deceitful compass, which we had mislaid somewhere and
  7192. could not now examine; but its inexplicable behaviour exercised my
  7193. mind fearfully. On the 9th of September, in the evening, we arrived
  7194. at Hamburg.
  7195. I cannot describe to you the astonishment of Martha or the joy of
  7196. Gr�uben.
  7197. "Now you are a hero, Axel," said to me my blushing _fianc�e,_ my
  7198. betrothed, "you will not leave me again!"
  7199. I looked tenderly upon her, and she smiled through her tears.
  7200. How can I describe the extraordinary sensation produced by the return
  7201. of Professor Liedenbrock? Thanks to Martha's ineradicable tattling,
  7202. the news that the Professor had gone to discover a way to the centre
  7203. of the earth had spread over the whole civilised world. People
  7204. refused to believe it, and when they saw him they would not believe
  7205. him any the more. Still, the appearance of Hans, and sundry pieces of
  7206. intelligence derived from Iceland, tended to shake the confidence of
  7207. the unbelievers.
  7208. Then my uncle became a great man, and I was now the nephew of a great
  7209. man--which is not a privilege to be despised.
  7210. Hamburg gave a grand fete in our honour. A public audience was given
  7211. to the Professor at the Johann�um, at which he told all about our
  7212. expedition, with only one omission, the unexplained and inexplicable
  7213. behaviour of our compass. On the same day, with much state, he
  7214. deposited in the archives of the city the now famous document of
  7215. Saknussemm, and expressed his regret that circumstances over which he
  7216. had no control had prevented him from following to the very centre of
  7217. the earth the track of the learned Icelander. He was modest
  7218. notwithstanding his glory, and he was all the more famous for his
  7219. humility.
  7220. So much honour could not but excite envy. There were those who envied
  7221. him his fame; and as his theories, resting upon known facts, were in
  7222. opposition to the systems of science upon the question of the central
  7223. fire, he sustained with his pen and by his voice remarkable
  7224. discussions with the learned of every country.
  7225. For my part I cannot agree with his theory of gradual cooling: in
  7226. spite of what I have seen and felt, I believe, and always shall
  7227. believe, in the central heat. But I admit that certain circumstances
  7228. not yet sufficiently understood may tend to modify in places the
  7229. action of natural phenomena.
  7230. While these questions were being debated with great animation, my
  7231. uncle met with a real sorrow. Our faithful Hans, in spite of our
  7232. entreaties, had left Hamburg; the man to whom we owed all our success
  7233. and our lives too would not suffer us to reward him as we could have
  7234. wished. He was seized with the mal de pays, a complaint for which we
  7235. have not even a name in English.
  7236. "_Farval,_" said he one day; and with that simple word he left us and
  7237. sailed for Rejkiavik, which he reached in safety.
  7238. We were strongly attached to our brave eider-down hunter; though far
  7239. away in the remotest north, he will never be forgotten by those whose
  7240. lives he protected, and certainly I shall not fail to endeavour to
  7241. see him once more before I die.
  7242. To conclude, I have to add that this 'Journey into the Interior of
  7243. the Earth' created a wonderful sensation in the world. It was
  7244. translated into all civilised languages. The leading newspapers
  7245. extracted the most interesting passages, which were commented upon,
  7246. picked to pieces, discussed, attacked, and defended with equal
  7247. enthusiasm and determination, both by believers and sceptics. Rare
  7248. privilege! my uncle enjoyed during his lifetime the glory he had
  7249. deservedly won; and he may even boast the distinguished honour of an
  7250. offer from Mr. Barnum, to exhibit him on most advantageous terms in
  7251. all the principal cities in the United States!
  7252. But there was one 'dead fly' amidst all this glory and honour; one
  7253. fact, one incident, of the journey remained a mystery. Now to a man
  7254. eminent for his learning, an unexplained phenomenon is an unbearable
  7255. hardship. Well! it was yet reserved for my uncle to be completely
  7256. happy.
  7257. One day, while arranging a collection of minerals in his cabinet, I
  7258. noticed in a corner this unhappy compass, which we had long lost
  7259. sight of; I opened it, and began to watch it.
  7260. It had been in that corner for six months, little mindful of the
  7261. trouble it was giving.
  7262. Suddenly, to my intense astonishment, I noticed a strange fact, and I
  7263. uttered a cry of surprise.
  7264. "What is the matter?" my uncle asked.
  7265. "That compass!"
  7266. "Well?"
  7267. "See, its poles are reversed!"
  7268. "Reversed?"
  7269. "Yes, they point the wrong way."
  7270. My uncle looked, he compared, and the house shook with his triumphant
  7271. leap of exultation.
  7272. A light broke in upon his spirit and mine.
  7273. "See there," he cried, as soon as he was able to speak. "After our
  7274. arrival at Cape Saknussemm the north pole of the needle of this
  7275. confounded compass began to point south instead of north."
  7276. "Evidently!"
  7277. "Here, then, is the explanation of our mistake. But what phenomenon
  7278. could have caused this reversal of the poles?"
  7279. "The reason is evident, uncle."
  7280. "Tell me, then, Axel."
  7281. "During the electric storm on the Liedenbrock sea, that ball of fire,
  7282. which magnetised all the iron on board, reversed the poles of our
  7283. magnet!"
  7284. "Aha! aha!" shouted the Professor with a loud laugh. "So it was just
  7285. an electric joke!"
  7286. From that day forth the Professor was the most glorious of savants,
  7287. and I was the happiest of men; for my pretty Virlandaise, resigning
  7288. her place as ward, took her position in the old house on the
  7289. K�nigstrasse in the double capacity of niece to my uncle and wife to
  7290. a certain happy youth. What is the need of adding that the
  7291. illustrious Otto Liedenbrock, corresponding member of all the
  7292. scientific, geographical, and mineralogical societies of all the
  7293. civilised world, was now her uncle and mine?
  7294. End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of A Journey to the Interior of the Earth, by
  7295. Jules Verne
  7296. *** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK A JOURNEY TO THE INTERIOR ***
  7297. ***** This file should be named 3748-8.txt or 3748-8.zip *****
  7298. This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
  7299. http://www.gutenberg.org/3/7/4/3748/
  7300. Produced by Norman M. Wolcott.
  7301. Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
  7302. will be renamed.
  7303. Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
  7304. one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
  7305. (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
  7306. permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
  7307. set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
  7308. copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
  7309. protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
  7310. Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
  7311. charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
  7312. do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
  7313. rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
  7314. such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
  7315. research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
  7316. practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
  7317. subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
  7318. redistribution.
  7319. *** START: FULL LICENSE ***
  7320. THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
  7321. PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
  7322. To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
  7323. distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
  7324. (or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
  7325. Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
  7326. Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
  7327. http://gutenberg.org/license).
  7328. Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
  7329. electronic works
  7330. 1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
  7331. electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
  7332. and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
  7333. (trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
  7334. the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
  7335. all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
  7336. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
  7337. Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
  7338. terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
  7339. entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
  7340. 1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
  7341. used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
  7342. agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
  7343. things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
  7344. even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
  7345. paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
  7346. Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
  7347. and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
  7348. works. See paragraph 1.E below.
  7349. 1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
  7350. or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
  7351. Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
  7352. collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
  7353. individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
  7354. located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
  7355. copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
  7356. works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
  7357. are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
  7358. Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
  7359. freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
  7360. this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
  7361. the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
  7362. keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
  7363. Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
  7364. 1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
  7365. what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
  7366. a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
  7367. the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
  7368. before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
  7369. creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
  7370. Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
  7371. the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
  7372. States.
  7373. 1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
  7374. 1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
  7375. access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
  7376. whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
  7377. phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
  7378. Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
  7379. copied or distributed:
  7380. This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
  7381. almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
  7382. re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
  7383. with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
  7384. 1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
  7385. from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
  7386. posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
  7387. and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
  7388. or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
  7389. with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
  7390. work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
  7391. through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
  7392. Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
  7393. 1.E.9.
  7394. 1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
  7395. with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
  7396. must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
  7397. terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
  7398. to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
  7399. permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
  7400. 1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  7401. License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
  7402. work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
  7403. 1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
  7404. electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
  7405. prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
  7406. active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
  7407. Gutenberg-tm License.
  7408. 1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
  7409. compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
  7410. word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
  7411. distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
  7412. "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
  7413. posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
  7414. you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
  7415. copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
  7416. request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
  7417. form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  7418. License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
  7419. 1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
  7420. performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
  7421. unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
  7422. 1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
  7423. access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
  7424. that
  7425. - You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
  7426. the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
  7427. you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
  7428. owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
  7429. has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
  7430. Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
  7431. must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
  7432. prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
  7433. returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
  7434. sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
  7435. address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
  7436. the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
  7437. - You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
  7438. you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
  7439. does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  7440. License. You must require such a user to return or
  7441. destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
  7442. and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
  7443. Project Gutenberg-tm works.
  7444. - You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
  7445. money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
  7446. electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
  7447. of receipt of the work.
  7448. - You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
  7449. distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
  7450. 1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
  7451. electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
  7452. forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
  7453. both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
  7454. Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
  7455. Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
  7456. 1.F.
  7457. 1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
  7458. effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
  7459. public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
  7460. collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
  7461. works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
  7462. "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
  7463. corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
  7464. property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
  7465. computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
  7466. your equipment.
  7467. 1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
  7468. of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
  7469. Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
  7470. Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
  7471. Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
  7472. liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
  7473. fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
  7474. LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
  7475. PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
  7476. TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
  7477. LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
  7478. INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
  7479. DAMAGE.
  7480. 1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
  7481. defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
  7482. receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
  7483. written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
  7484. received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
  7485. your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
  7486. the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
  7487. refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
  7488. providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
  7489. receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
  7490. is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
  7491. opportunities to fix the problem.
  7492. 1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
  7493. in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS' WITH NO OTHER
  7494. WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
  7495. WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
  7496. 1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
  7497. warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
  7498. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
  7499. law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
  7500. interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
  7501. the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
  7502. provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
  7503. 1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
  7504. trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
  7505. providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
  7506. with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
  7507. promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
  7508. harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
  7509. that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
  7510. or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
  7511. work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
  7512. Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
  7513. Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
  7514. Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
  7515. electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
  7516. including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
  7517. because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
  7518. people in all walks of life.
  7519. Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
  7520. assistance they need, are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
  7521. goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
  7522. remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
  7523. Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
  7524. and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
  7525. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
  7526. and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
  7527. and the Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org.
  7528. Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
  7529. Foundation
  7530. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
  7531. 501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
  7532. state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
  7533. Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
  7534. number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
  7535. http://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
  7536. Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
  7537. permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
  7538. The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
  7539. Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
  7540. throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
  7541. 809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
  7542. business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
  7543. information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official
  7544. page at http://pglaf.org
  7545. For additional contact information:
  7546. Dr. Gregory B. Newby
  7547. Chief Executive and Director
  7548. gbnewby@pglaf.org
  7549. Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
  7550. Literary Archive Foundation
  7551. Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
  7552. spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
  7553. increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
  7554. freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
  7555. array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
  7556. ($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
  7557. status with the IRS.
  7558. The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
  7559. charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
  7560. States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
  7561. considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
  7562. with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
  7563. where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
  7564. SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
  7565. particular state visit http://pglaf.org
  7566. While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
  7567. have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
  7568. against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
  7569. approach us with offers to donate.
  7570. International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
  7571. any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
  7572. outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
  7573. Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
  7574. methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
  7575. ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations.
  7576. To donate, please visit: http://pglaf.org/donate
  7577. Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
  7578. works.
  7579. Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
  7580. concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
  7581. with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
  7582. Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
  7583. Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
  7584. editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
  7585. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
  7586. keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
  7587. Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
  7588. http://www.gutenberg.org
  7589. This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
  7590. including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
  7591. Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
  7592. subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.